naruto incubus

Posted originally on the Archive of Our Own at /works/18492112.

Rating:

Not Rated

Archive Warnings:

Rape/Non-Con, Underage Sex

Categories:

F/M, Multi, Other

Fandom:

Naruto

Relationship:

all orginal naruto charcters

Character:

all orginal naruto charcters - Character

Language:

English

Stats:

Published: 2019-04-16 Words: 87,271 Chapters: 17/17

naruto incubus

by Beastlybacca123

Summary

i make no money from this i have permission from the person who wrote this to remake it

none of this i own

Chapter 1

fsfasdfcsd

heritage

Heritage

Mira gathered what was left of her strength and pushed Naruto, who was kissing and fucking

her at the same time away before turning around and trying to crawl away hopelessly.

"Please, no more..." She breathed but gasped when his hands shot out and grabbed her ankles,

spreading her eagle before pulling her back to him and thrust his cock into her abused and

over used anal, much to her shock and his pleasure.

"Now now, be a good girl and let me feed you!" Naruto grinned evilly while slamming his

hip rapidly down to her big ass, moving his cock in and out of the tight tunnel of flesh. Mira

shivered in pleasure at the way Naruto was fucking her, even after all these hours he was still

working both of their body tirelessly. She didn't remember how many times had she came or

how many gallons of sperm he unleashed into her demon body but she knew that she could

no longer feel her legs and her belly was bloating with so much sperm that she looked like a

nine-month pregnant woman.

Even after finding out what he was, this was just too much, way too much.

"Naruto-kun, honey it's time for lunch." Naruto then heard his mother called out for him at

the other side of the door. Even if he wanted to keep playing with his new fuck-pet like this

until he was full satisfied, Naruto already skipped breakfast and without a proper meal, he

would get tired soon enough. Plus, his mother's cooking wasn't something he could deny.

"Okay Kaa-chan!" Naruto said loudly and pulled himself out of Mira much to her relief. He

then moved closer to her mouth and let the succubus suck on his cock, drinking his pre-cum

to gain back some of her strength "Wait, I would like to meet someone." He called out again

before Kushina could leave.

"Don't tell me you brought a new girl to the house again Naruto-kun." Kushina said with a

motherly tone. Even when she already used to fucking with her son and could be quite slutty

most of the time, she was still a mother who loved her child.

"Yep"

"Who is she now?"

"You can come in and see her for yourself, the doors weren't locked" He said and helped Mira

get on her knees beside him.

'That's new' now Kushina became curious. Because their relationship was a secret to others,

Naruto would react like a boy would react whenever she caught him fucking some girls in his

room, because a boy his age wouldn't like his mother to catch him naked with a woman.

However, this was the first time he had outright invited her in to meet the girl, unless he

wasn't having sex like usual.

Kushina opened the door and found Naruto naked which wasn't unexpected, sitting on the

edge of his bed with his cock pointing upward and still wet with saliva. She had to stop

herself from licking her lips at the pussy-arousing sight and turned to the girl who was sitting

traditionally next to him, bowing her head low to Naruto's mother with hands on her lap.

"Kaa-chan, this is Mirajane." Naruto introduced, decided to leave out the demonic part "Mira,

this is my mother, Kushina."

"It's a pleasure..." Mira bowed her head respectfully before looking up, but as soon as she did

that both she and Kushina gasped and widened their eyes in utter shock.

"K-Kushina-sama?" Mira shuttered in shock.

Naruto could only stare at them in confusion before turning to Mira and ask in wondering

"You know my mother?"

Line Break

"So let's me get this straight," Naruto spoke up for the first time, sitting on his chair at the

dining table with his mother and a fully clothed Mira in front of him. "You, kaa-chan is no

ordinary human, but actually an Arch Succubus like Mira. Not only that but you are also the

former Queen of the Succubus, retired from that position a few years ago and came to the

human world to live, with an Uzumaki cover thank your red hair."

"Yes, and I chose Mira's mother to be my successor, Eve since I didn't have a child back

then"

"But if you're a Succubus, wouldn't it make me..."

"An incubus, a male sex demon. That was why most of my magic couldn't work on you

Naruto-sama, as a Succubus' magic could not affect those who were superior than her." Mira

spoke up "But I have never seen an Incubus with a sex-drive and stamina like you before

Naruto-sama."

"He's my son, duh." Kushina said it like it wasn't something Mira should feel surprise about.

"That will also explain my abnormal libido" Naruto said, leaned back against his chair "and

explain why you were than willing to suck my dick, kaa-chan" He said it shamelessly and

grinned at his mother, making her giggle "Not to mention all the sex we have had since I was

ten." He then frowned "But why didn't you keep this a secret, kaa-chan?"

"Well Naruto-kun, first I would like to raise your normally. Maybe I will tell you someday in

the near future when you're mature enough to understand" The son of Yondaime pouted at

that He always hated it when people considered him wasn't mature enough, especially his

mother who he had sex with every day.

"Ten? Wait, don't tell me that your first time is with Kushina-sama" Mira said in shock and

Naruto nodded his head "You're so lucky!" She put her hands together and cooed girlishly,

with her eyes sparkled like the stars in the night.

"Sex demon's first time is always one of the hardest times of their life, so of course I was the

best partner for my son." Kushina smiled and explained it to Naruto "All sex demons'

maturity is at the age of ten that is when we can start our sex life and can fully experience the

pleasure of sex. However, after our tenth birthday our life our life will depend on sex and sex

only, we stop fucking and drinking sexuality energy, we will die. You, however, is only a half

Incubus because of your father, so you don't realize on sex that much and can still live

normally with human's foods" Naruto nodded his head in understanding "But I doubt it

affected your libido, Am I right Mira?"

"Yes... he really fucked me stupid."

Kushina then turned her head to Mira "Fifty men to death in just two weeks, I expect nothing

less from the princess herself" The girl stuck out her tongue cutely and knocked herself on

the head.

"You knew, Kaa-chan?"

"No, I already figured it out that a Succubus was the one behind all those deaths but it was

actually hard to believe that the Succubus princess was actually the one." Kushina smirked

slyly "What? Get tired of the men there and come to the human world to find new thrill?"

"Yeah," Mira giggled "I heard that human men came faster than demon, so I come here to see

if the rumor is true."

"And then you met my son, whose is more than capable of out-fuck even a squad of

Succubus like you. How ironic!" Kushina commented before standing up "I will let you two

plays later, but now, I need my meal" with a flicked of her hands, Kushina's clothes

completely disappeared, leaving her naked in front of her son. Another click of her hands and

his clothes disappeared as well.

A tail, just like Mira's tail then appeared from his mother's back and moved toward his dick,

wrapping several times around it before glowing. Naruto smirked when he saw his cock

slowly hardened before coming to stand at full mass.

"You got to teach me how to do that, mom" Naruto grinned and pushed himself up, pushing

his mother against the wall before turning her around.

"I will let Mira take care of the details, I think that she is more than happy to help you with

that." Kushina said as she was pinched flat against the wall, her left left was lifted up with her

son's hand holding her thigh. It didn't take him long to get his cock into her pussy and punch

straight into her womb "Am I right, Mira?" she turned her head around slightly to ask.

"It will be my greatest honor Kushina-sama!" Eve shot up and puffed her massive chest out in

pride "I'm going to make sure that Naruto-sama become the greatest Incubus."

"Good to hear!" The former Queen giggled before moaning out as Naruto started to fuck her.

Now that Naruto knew his mother's true nature, he didn't show any hesitation to pound her

good and hard. Before, even if she was a strong Kunoichi and he fucked her really hard most

of the times, he was always worry that he would accidentally hurt her if she was fucked too

hard. But now that he knew she was a sex demon, a natural born demon with the body for

fucking, Naruto didn't stop himself from pounding her ass as hard as possible.

Removing his mother from the wall, Naruto lifted her whole body up with his hands

underneath her thighs and spread her legs eagle, starting to pound her on his cock with his hip

thrust up to meet her every time she fell down. Kushina's eyes rolled into the back of her

head at the pleasure of having her son's big cock moving with extreme speed within her body.

Her tits bouncing and sometimes slapped into her face as Naruto bounced her on his cock,

rapidly impaling his fuck meat into her body.

Then, he suddenly stopped and whispered into her ear.

"Your asshole, now" Kushina grinned and snaked her hand down to pull his cock out of her

fold and position it at her anus. As Naruto slowly inserting his dick into her tightest hole,

Kushina grabbed his balls and fondled them in her hands, smirking lewdly as she could feel

its heaviness and the amount of cream he was holding within.

"Ohhhh - - oh, that's perfect - - give me more, baby - - fuck Mommy's ass, now - - fuck it

hard and deep! Fuck Mommy's ass! Mommy needs your big cock up her ass!"

Naruto sped up, shoving his big, thick meat up his mother's butt, giving her the ass-fucking

she craved. Her tight, hot ass muscles clasped his prick as he speared it up her hole.

"Fuck me - - fuck Mommy's horny ass!" Kushina yelled, loving the feeling of her son's huge

prick up her behind. "Kami, baby - - gonna fucking - - cum again!" she cried, her pussy and

ass clenching and cumming as he fucked her hard and fast, another orgasm running through

her body. She came so hard that her juice squirted out and sprayed on the wall in front of

them

"Fuck, mom - - gonna cum too!" Naruto grunted, packing his length deep up her ass.

"Cum on my face!" she cried. "I want to eat your cum!"

Naruto smirked and withdrew his bloated cock from her hot ass and watched as she spun

around and kneeled before him. He stood in front of her, jerking on his prick before she

knocked his hand away and sucked on his cock, stuffing it down her throat.

"Fucking hell," he moaned "Now that I know you're a succubus, you're way hotter than

before Kaa-chan" he then thrust his dick slowly

Naruto felt his prick swell in her mouth as the familiar tightening in his balls signaled his

own orgasm. Kushina could feel it too and pulled back, jerking him rapidly with her hand.

The Incubus then groaned as his dick spat out a huge line of viscous cream that splattered

thickly over his mother's face, laying from her forehead, over one eye and part of her cheek

before hanging off her jaw. Another line and another shot from his prick, glazing her perfect

face in streams of pearly white jizz, running down her face, over her smiling mouth as she

continued jerking on his cock, aiming the fourth, fifth, sixth, seventh and more shots over

herself.

"Cum on kaa-chan's face - - that's it, baby," she cooed before taking his cock head into her

mouth, sucking down his cum straight from the source. She drank his endless cum like a pro,

gulping down mouthful after mouthful to make sure that he had room to shoot more loads in.

After he was done, Kushina withdrew her head from his cock and smiled at him "Mmmmm,

yummy," she said, using his slowly softening prick to push his cum from her face towards her

mouth.

"Fuck, mom," Naruto gasped, watching her scoop his cum from her face with her fingers

before lifting her own tits and licking up the spunk that had dripped on to them.

As his mother suck on his cock, Naruto turned his head around and looked at Mira, who was

also naked just like them. The white haired succubus was furiously fingering pussy with one

hand groping her tits, a slutty expression on her face as she watched the mother sucking on

her son's dick.

"That was the hottest thing I had ever seen in my life" Mira commented, making Naruto feel

proud of himself.

Line Break

"So, as long as you keep fucking me, I won't attack the other human again." Mira said with a

slutty smile as she clung to Naruto's arm like glue while the both of them walked through the

street of Konoha "This kind of deal is a win win for both of us, so deal?"

"I see, then deal" Naruto nodded his head. He would be gay or stupid if he refused such a

deal like this. He had learnt from his mother that he didn't have to worry about her or Mira

sucking his life-force drained, since they lived on both sexual energy and others' life-force.

Being Kushina's son, his life force was strong enough to regenerate back to before in just a

few hours, not to mention demon, Hanyo or not could live for thousands of year or even

more.

After fully drained men's sexual energy in the form of their sperm out of their body, the

succubus would start to suck on their life force to feed themselves, thus killing the after they

was sucked completely dry. In Naruto's case, he could simply cum so much that he would

easily flood a succubus if she wasn't careful. His large testicles could also produce endless

amount of rich and super nutrition sperm, enough to feed many succubus at once.

Overall, he got nothing to worry about.

But from this point, Naruto also had to be extra be careful if he had sex with a human girl. He

always wondering why his mother always busted into his room in the middle of sex, stopping

him from continuing. At first he thought she was jealous or something but now he

understand.

Like Mira who killed those fifty men simply by fucking them, he could easily kill a woman if

he went too far on them. As he was a young, untrained Incubus, he couldn't control what he

was sucking and would unconsciously drain their life force whenever he had sex with them.

He wouldn't have to worry when fucking Succubuses like Mira or his mother, but with the

other girls, Mira wisely advised him that he shouldn't try with human girls until he learned to

control his Incubus power.

"Great, and you should know that I want three meals per day, and a quick snack before going

to sleep." Mira grinned and held out three fingers "Other than that, you can fuck me

whenever and however you want. In turn, I will teach you our magic and how to become a

great Incubus."

"I think I can manage that." Naruto nodded his head with a smile. Another mouth to feed

wasn't something he couldn't handle, especially when he had a way to handle not two but

thousands succubuses like them at once if possible "By the way, what's wrong with these

people, it's like they can't see you." Naruto said and looked around. Someone with foreign

appearance like Mira, especially someone as beautiful as she was wasn't an usual sight

around the village, so she would immediately draw a lot attention from everyone, but

currently they were walking pass her like she wasn't there, completely ignored the attractive

white haired woman "Magic?"

"Yes and you are currently the only one that can see me, since my magic doesn't work on

you." Mira then smiled slyly and thrust her hand into his pant, grabbing his cock "and we

could fuck each other right here if you want to, no one will be able to see us."

"Nah, I think I will pass" Naruto shook his head "I'm still a Shinobi you know and I have

works to do."

"I see, but can I play your cock like this?" Mira asked seductively, wings magically appeared

on her back even though she was still wearing the sweater his mother gave her. With a flap,

Mira's body was lifted from the ground and floated next to Naruto. She then pulled down his

zipper and took his cock out of his pants, thank to her magic no one was able to see it. " don't

tell me that you don't feel turn on by it" she giggled when his cock slowly hardened in her

hand.

"Do whatever you want" Naruto said it simply and continued walking.

"Hai!" Mira cooed excitedly and started to stroke his dick, at the same time wrapped her tail

around his wrist and put the heart end into his hand.

Line Break

"Eh? Kakashi-sensei is sick?" Naruto asked in disbelief, trying to keep his voice as normal as

it could. Because Mira and her playfulness were unseen by all with the help of her magic, the

succubus were currently kneeling in front of him and sucking on his cock, with her breasts

wrapped around what she didn't take into her mouth. The girl also shamelessly removed

every single piece of clothes from her body and was currently in her birth suit.

Again, unseen by all but him and his mother, who was also summoned to the Hokage's office

with him.

"Yes, I heard that he stayed out at night and caught a cold, a very hard one" The Sandaime

Hokage nodded his head "We already took him to the hospital but it will take a while for him

to get back to duty again." The old man sighed "So for now, you both will have to handle

team seven for him."

"Both of us?" Kushina asked in surprise.

"Yes, I know that both of you are more than capable of taking care of a team, alone but this

will be a great chance for you to show Naruto the way of handling a team Kushina." Sarutobi

explained "As he will probably assigned with a Gennin Team in the future, I think that it will

be great if we prepare for him from this time."

"I see, thank you Hokage-sama" Kushina smiled and nodded her head.

"Do you have any objection, Naruto?"

"No Ji-chan." Naruto grinned.

More times with his mother.

"Good, I want you two to be here at three this afternoon and start your first mission with team

seven. You can go now." With that, the mother and son left the Hokage's office, with Mira

still sucking on his cock.

Basically when it came to sex, sex demons like them didn't have something called shame or

hesitation. That word so wasn't in their dictionary. Naruto could now see why he was so

confident fucking his mother.

"I see that you found a new kind of entertainment." Kushina said with a sly smirk and patted

him on the head, looking at Mira who was still clunging to his cock like glue, floating above

the ground in front of him "Your mother is very proud of you." She smiled.

Naruto smiled back to his mother before grunting throatily in pleasure as Mira finally brought

him to the edge of cumming. It didn't take him long to blow his loads into Mira's mouth,

filling it almost immediately.

Mira gulped down all of his ejaculation and didn't spill a drop.

"Ah~, how refreshing." Mira moaned out excitedly after letting go of his cock, her breasts

bounced when she stretched her hands about his head "Such delicious sperm, you're the best

Naruto-sama." She flew forward and clung to him again with his arm sandwiched between

her large breasts, leaning her head against his shoulder.

"Mira, I think you should start with Naruto's training. We're going to be very busy the next

couple of days so I doubt you will have much time teaching him."

"The sex still going?"

"Of course, but remember, not while we're working or fighting." Mira nodded her head at the

former Queen's words "You guys go back to the house and start with Naruto's training. I need

to finish the paperwork before we can fully take over Team Seven." Kushina smiled and

kissed Naruto on his lips "Train hard, okay?" She winked at him before walking away

"Become a great Incubus and live up to your mother's name." with that, she left the place.

Naruto couldn't help but smile at that.

"Where are you going Mira?" He asked curiously when he saw her open the windows.

"Meet me at your house Naruto-sama. I need to get something for you." With that, she flared

out her wings and flew out.

Line Break

Naruto with only his boxer left on his body was waiting patiently for Mira to return. Since he

knew that sooner or later he would have the chance to fuck her again, there was no point of

wearing unnecessary clothes when there were only the two of them in the house. Naruto

wanted to stay naked, but a boxer should be fine.

Then, when he was about to get impatient, a white circle suddenly appeared on the floor of

his room and Mira appeared from it, wearing the revealing one piece suit on her body she

wore yesterday night. It must be one of her magic that allowed her to teleport from one place

to another, but Naruto didn't understand why she couldn't just simply fly into his room.

Thought, Naruto didn't need to ask her for the answer, because she was bringing someone

with her.

That someone was a woman, who was the owner of the greatest boobs of all Elemental

Nations.

Tsunade Senju, his godmother and one of the legendary three Sannin of Konoha.

Also, she was wearing something that made his cock hard in an instant, becoming noticeable

on his boxer.

It was a set of lingerie that was crying sexy, slutty and absolutely great on her. They were all

bright red in color. Somehow, in a magical way, Tsunade managed to fit her majestic breasts

into the bra, even though it pushed them up so much she could almost nuzzle her own

cleavage. A tiny red thong that could barely hide her pussy and he bet that her whole ass

crack was visible, as her ass cheek would completely swallow the tiny cloth. Tsunade also

wore skin tight stockings that connected to garner belt around her tiny waist, as well as red

stilettos.

She looked completely fuckable.

Though, even when he was extremely aroused by her slutty appearance, he couldn't help but

notice that there was something abnormal about her when he look at her eyes.

They were dazed and had this faraway look, as if she wasn't paying attention to what she was

seeing and her mind was elsewhere.

"Surprise?" Mira cried out while waving both of her hands at Tsunade "I also dressed her up a

bit before coming here." She then looked at him "I came across this one while looking for a

training dummy for you around the village, these tits completely drew me to her." Mira

reached her hand and groped Tsunade's left tit, squeezing it while moving the orb of flesh

around "I also looked into her memories and found out that she had a one night stand with

you a year ago Naruto-sama, so I chose her to be your training dummy for today."

Surprisingly enough, the busty blonde Sannin was one of Naruto's lovers, even though she

was only a one night stand. A year ago, Naruto found her Tsunade drinking in a local bar and

refused to stop gulping down the wine even after she was completely drunk. Since they knew

each other rather well, the bartender asked him to bring her out of his bar.

After bringing Tsunade to her house, things simply happened and before he knew it he found

himself pounding into Tsunade from above. Naruto fucked and played with her tits, the

greatest boobs of all Elemental Nations a lot during that night, maybe even more than fucking

her pussy or asshole and could never forget that incredibly pleasure experience.

The next morning, he decided to leave as soon as possible before she could get angry at him

and punch him like he usually punched Jiraiya. But later that day he found out that she didn't

remember anything at all.

Naruto always wanted to fuck her again. He would do anything to have her tits wrapped

around his dick again and titty fuck him until he cum and paint her tits white with his goo.

So seeing her like this, greatly turned him on.

"What happened to her?" Naruto asked in amazement and stood up, clicking his fingers in

front of her face but she still didn't response to his action.

"I'm controlling her with my magic, the same magic I'm about to teach you Naruto-sama."

Naruto nodded his head, cracking madly at the thought "I also overlapped her mind with

some of my magic. She is now completely loyal to you. She won't know why, when or how it

started. Tsunade Senju will simply listen to every single words you tell her, or do anything

you tell her to do even bend down and let you fuck her raw. I also make her become more

comfortable with sex with you and she will become extremely horny if she sees your dick.

Remember, your dick only. " Mira then frowned "It took me all of my magical energy that I

got from your sperm you fed me this morning just to do all that to this woman. She is crazily

strong, mentally."

"I see," Naruto grinned "I will feed you later, now, show me the way?"

"Right" Mira then turned to Tsunade and stared at her in the eyes. The succubus' eyes then

glowed magically for a second. Tsunade then blinked rapidly and looked around totally

confused "Okay, I just tell her not to listen to you, for now."

"So you can still do that? Those orders weren't permanently?"

"Duh, I'm the one who reordered her mind remember?" Mira waved her finger around.

"Naruto, what is the meaning of this?" Tsunade asked harshly while looking at Naruto, before

casting her eyes to herself and looking at her body "Why am I wearing this?" she asked in

shocked. It seemed that she couldn't see or hear Mira.

"Now it's your turn to control her Naruto-sama." Mira spoke up "You already did it once

while having sex with me last night, just think about what you want Tsunade to do and focus

your power into your eyes." Mira then grinned slyly "Try to make her remove your pant for

you."

Naruto did what he was told and stared into Tsunade's eyes, focusing all of his willpower into

his eyes while imagine the screen of Tsunade get down to her knees and remove his pant for

him and free his steel hard cock.

"What's up bra..." but she stopped speaking the moment Naruto's eyes started to glow.

Tsunade suddenly felt a strange urge at the back of her mind and let herself listened to it, she

got on her knees in front of Naruto and grabbed the waistline of his boxer, pulling it down

and freed his hard cock.

The moment Naruto's dick coming into view, she was extremely aroused. She couldn't help

but gulp at the sight of the massive pole twitching in front of her face.

"This is the simplest magic of sex demons like us. It is very different from mind controlling

technique you see. This magic will put a strong urge, a need into the one you're controlling

mind that are so strong that they cannot stop themselves from doing it immediately. You want

her to remove your pant, she will feel she need to remove it immediately."

"What a very useful trick!" Naruto commented in amazement. This kind of technique could

become very useful on the battlefield, if he could control an enemy into killing his comrades

or tell him all the secret and important intels without no one knowing anything about it.

Because it was urges and needs, not mind controlling, not even the Yamanaka would be able

to tell.

"Because I'm already control her, her mind is pretty weak right now. It will take more training

and power to control the stronger will one." Mira explained before saying "Since in those

memories, you loved her tits a lot, why don't you tell her to give you a titty-fuck next?" she

asked slyly.

Once again, Naruto mentally commanded to do what he wanted her to do and much to his

excitement, this time he did it at the first try. Tsunade straightened herself up and removed

her tiny bra, revealing her areolas and nipples before grabbing both of her tits, moving them

slightly apart before smashing them together with his cock in between.

Naruto moaned out lustfully at the feeling of the incredibly soft fleshes wrapped completely

around his cock, simply leaned back slightly and let her work his cock. She pumped her

massive breasts up and down, squashing her huge tits with her hands, moving them quickly

along his length

It only took a little more than ten minutes for Naruto to be moaning out constantly and for his

cock to throb and swell up more between her breasts. Tsunade then jerked his rod faster and

faster, as well as harder as before allowing him to blast his load all over her face. He howled

like an animal in heat and climaxed between her massive mounds, shooting a large blast of

cum into Tsunade's face, making her throw her head back and let the continuous blast to go

high into the air before falling down to her neck, chest and breasts. It leaked in her cleavage,

dripping down to her mostly naked body.

"Nice" Mira commented and scooped some of the cum on Tsunade's cheek and put it into her

mouth "As expect from Naruto-sama, at this rate you will be able to control your mother into

doing unspeakable things, though I doubt you really need to do so." Mira then declared and

grabbed Tsunade, throwing her onto his bed "Enough training, time for some fucking."

"Wait, what about her life force?" Naruto asked.

"No worry Naruto-sama, a few rounds of sex won't kill her. Plus, Tsunade is physically

insanely strong, I doubt that she cannot keep up with your stamina."

"True." Naruto nodded his head and grinned. He knew better than anyone about that after that

night. Other than his mother, she was the only one that could keep up with his godly stamina

and libido, as she could last for more than a couple of rounds with him.

With that, Naruto was no longer hesitation and couldn't stop himself from leaping forward

and pushed her down to the bed, squashing her huge tits against it. Naruto grabbed his dick

and positioned it in front of her pussy's entrance and pounded his cock in immediately after

that, making her cry in pain.

He forced himself as deep as he could into her, punching into her womb much to both of their

pleasure. He then wrapped his muscular arms around her large tits, hugging their body close

and then thrust again and again, merciless into her pussy with his hip slapped against her ass.

He groped her tits hard as he fucked her pussy, delving into its tight and warm depths.

Tsunade soon lost her mind and became only a nice and tight pussy for him to fuck. She was

drooling on the bed sheet, panting and moaning as if she was in heat, fucked literally silly by

Naruto's incredible cock.

"Such a strong and dominating Incubus, the other succubuses are going to get really horny

when I tell them about you" Mira said slyly as she got down to the bed next to Naruto and

Tsunade, lying on her front and supported her head with her palms, watching him fuck.

Soon, Naruto reached his climax and grunted loudly as he came, shooting his sperm into her,

his pulsing cock splattering her insides with his sperm. Even after her inside was full, he kept

pumping his sperm in her, expanding her womb with it.

"I wonder just how many litters these boys can produce per second" Mira reached her hands

out and grabbed his big balls. She could feel them clenching and throbbing rapidly to produce

more sperm for him to cum.

When he was satisfied and his climax died out, Naruto slowly pulled himself out of Tsunade's

fold and offered his cock to Mira's mouth, letting her suck on his cock while he rapidly

spanked Tsunade's big ass. Her ass were just as great as her tits and he just loved the way

both of them jiggled whenever he fucked her.

"Come here Tsunade" He grabbed her by the waist and brought her to him before turning the

busty women around. He grinned when her massive tits were in front of him again and wasn't

hesitation to bury his face between them. His hands grabbed her nipples and pulled on her tits

hard, making the Sannin to cry out in pleasure.

What a great way to start a life of an Incubus.

End of Chapter 2

On the trip to wave Country

Chapter 3

On the trip to wave Country

"So... a 'girl' who clearly clearly doesn't have any sex appeal, an emo with a tiny dick and

lastly a mutt." Mira commented boringly while lying in the bathtub filled with hot water,

sitting right on Naruto's lap and his cock remaining still in her ass, his hands playing with her

large tits that were floating on the water surface "What a team!" she said sarcastically.

It was night time, after Naruto and Kushina returned from their first meeting with Team

Seven, the team they had to take care of for awhile for Kakashi to recover. Mira also followed

them and she had a very similar opinion about Team Seven like Naruto and his mother.

Apparently it would take some times for the Cyclops to recover from his sickness. Naruto

didn't know why a mentally and physically strong Shinobi like him could catch a sickness

like that, but for some reasons he had the feeling that he was also involved.

But the blond didn't pay much thought to it and was now enjoying the new way of life, even

though it didn't change that much.

"It can't be help." Kushina, who was taking a shower not too far from them, spoke up. The

sight of her erotic body dripping with water was just too much for him to handle, so he

needed his cock inside Mira's body in order to ease the painful itching down "Sasuke is the

rookie of his year while Kiba is the dead last, the Hokage thought that placing them into the

same team with Sakura Haruno, who is very smart and graduated with high grades would

balance the team. Apparently, their egos don't match and turn out to be a quite bad decision."

She sighed "Not to mention that Kiba has a huge crush for Sakura, who is training her voice

to scream when Sasuke shoves his pepper-size tiny little, almost non-existence little dick into

her pussy, the same boy that will be more than happy to have a boy suck his dick for him."

"Speaking like a professional but still manage to keep Succubus' nature, I really miss that

attitude of yours, Kushina-sama" Mira smiled and gave her a thumb up "You should return to

the Demon Realm someday and meet my mother, Kushina-sama, to give her advices of how

to rule a race of sex crazed demons properly."

"Eva can handle it, after all she is the first succubus and she is wiser than me." Kushina

smiled "Looking at her daughter now, I can see how well she is ruling our race."

"Make me want to introduce Naruto-sama to her" Mira turned around and let Naruto tongue

kiss her for a few seconds before saying "I doubt that she will stop herself from trying to

mate with such a fine specie men like this." Her hand reached out and fondled his balls

underwater.

"Eh? She didn't mate with your father?" Kushina asked in surprise.

"Oh please, I don't even know who my father is; maybe he is one of the guys in her harem or

just a random guy she picked while she was out." Mira shrugged like it wasn't something

much "Mom still saving that for a special man."

"I see, kind of old-fashioned don't you think?" Kushina giggled "The sultriest succubus, yet

she is the one who always follows the codes of Sex demons."

"Excuse me, sorry for interrupting but did you just say harem?" Naruto asked, curiously

"Your mother has a harem?"

"Of course, Kushina-sama used to have one too. A harem consists of one thousand healthy

men to feed her every single night. Some of them are Incubus like you while some others are

different races. This harem will take care of the Queen's personal need and there is always a

man attend her chamber every night to feed her." Mira explained "to us Succubus, men in our

harem are our foods, nothing more and nothing less."

"I see... interesting" Naruto chuckled.

"As a princess, I have one too, though the number is quite small compare to my mother and

Kushina-sama, only three hundred of them."

"Well? Am I one of them?"

"Of course not Naruto-sama" Mira moaned out as she raised her hip up before slowly sinking

down his cock again "you're too incredible to be considered my foods. With you around I

doubt that I will need them to feed me, so maybe I should consider about disbanding my

harem." She then winked mysteriously to Naruto "I'm still available for mating Naruto-sama,

if things turn out well between us, maybe I will let you take me completely to yourself."

"Before I met your father, I had one too. One thousand or so, I don't remember." Kushina

continued Mira's words. Turning around and let the water poured down her face and down to

her voluptuous body "There were also women in my harem too but after I retired, most of

them must be taken to become Eva's sperm banks."

"You mated with dad?"

"I mated with him and I let you fuck me every day?" Kushina giggled while using the back of

her hand to hide her mouth "No of course not Naruto-kun, mating to Succubus is something

very important. I loved your father, but it is still not enough to make me mate with him just

like Eva, who birthed Mira without mating with her father. The bond between a Succubus

and her mates are sacred. You can have thousands of food resources, but you can only have

one man you deeply in love with in your life. Just like you Naruto, you can have multi lovers,

maybe even succubus who mated with you and you can love them back in return too if you

want but there is always a special girl who you will love more than anything or anyone."

Naruto was silent at that. So far he only thought sex demon like his mother and Mira was the

creature of sex and lust, as they would do anything to have sex and suck out the life of their

partners, killing them in the process before heading to the new ones. Hearing his mother tell

him about it, had completely changed Naruto's view to the Succubus and Incubus.

"So choose wisely Naruto-kun, listen to what your heart tell you to do." Kushina smiled and

gave Naruto a rare motherly smile "That girl will arrive in your life, eventually." She smiled

softly and turned back to the shower "Us Succubus and Incubus is the demon of sex and lust

yes, but we're also the creature of love and passion."

Line Break

"If I'm not mistaken, which I probably not, your dick grew an inch longer compare to

yesterday." Mira said and dramatically took out a ruler to take a proper measure of his dick

while he was thrusting it in and out of Tsunade's throat, one hand putting on her throat feeling

the massive outlines his dick created while the other rapidly slapping Tsunade's massive tits,

as she was lying on their dining table with her head hung upside down and mouth open wide

"It is also slightly bigger than yesterday as well." The blond was having the time of his life

with his training dummy again

"For real?" Naruto asked in surprise. He was only sixteen, so his body was still growing and

his dick was no exception. But even with a massive grown spurt, a dick would never be able

to get an inch longer and bigger in just a single day. Naruto was very proud of himself,

sixteen years old and probably the biggest guy in town, with twelve inches, or a foot long

cock could fuck stupid any women even the greatest succubi like his mother. Becoming

bigger or a few inches longer would only help him more in the attempt of reshaping women's

pussies and bring them to the new level of pleasure, but it would become really annoying and

a problem if he became as hung as a horse.

"Yes, your dick is now thirteen inches Naruto-sama and it is as big as my forearm" Mira

stood up and waved her fist around "Two more inches and you will become the biggest

Incubus stud." Mira licked her lips seductively at that, her eyes gluing to the massive bulge

on Tsunade's throat.

"I'm happy with this size thank you very much." Naruto said sarcastically and thrust his hip

faster, moaning slightly at the feeling of Tsunade's throat wrapped around his cock "How the

hell am I going to fuck if my dick is too big to push it in?"

"You know Naruto-kun," His mother stopped in front of the room, carrying a bag full of dirty

clothes in her hands "that is something you shouldn't too worry about, you can still fuck us

even your dick is double the size it is now. What you should worry about is what it is going to

do to human women. Unlike demon women whose pussies or any holes on her body will still

remain as tight as a virgin no matter how many times you fucked them. Human women

meanwhile aren't that durable physically. Kunoichi is a lot stronger compare to civilian

women yes, but it isn't going to change the fact that you're going to reshape their pussies into

the shape of your dick, and soon they will become too loose for you to fuck." He then stared

at him "Do you want to fuck a tight pussy or a loose one?"

"Well, then I think I'm going to stick to demonesses then." Naruto laughed nervously before

abruptly sheathed his dick into Tsunade's gullet, slapping his balls against her face and

grabbed onto her tits, squeezing them hard and moaning out loudly as he blew his load

directly into her gut.

It took him several minutes to stop cumming and by the time he was done, Tsunade's belly

already expanded a little by the vast amount of sperm released into her. He let Mira sucked

on his dick and drew out the last of his seeds still remaining inside and grinned in

satisfaction. He could get use to this every day.

"Time to start the next lesson honey," Mira then stood up and helped Tsunade got off the table

and on her feet in front of Naruto, totally naked "another eyes trick, the Arousing Stare."

"Why do I have the feeling that it's just another chance for him to fuck me senseless?"

Tsunade asked unsurprised.

"Because honey, the chance of seeing those giant boobs of yours bouncing is just too good

for my eyes to be missed." Mira said with a sultry and teasing smile, rubbing Tsunade's large

breasts with her hands. Since Tsunade was now completely loyal to Naruto, they already told

the busty woman about Mira's true nature and made her swear to his mother she wasn't going

to tell it to anyone. Swearing to a powerful demoness like his mother meant that if Tsunade

ever told it to anyone without their permission, she was going to be punished in a way she

would wish she was never born.

Though, Naruto doubted his godmother would go against her promise, since she was addicted

to his cock already.

"Alright Naruto, here is the most basic magic of sex demons, the Arousing Stare." Mira told

him "This magic is going to make others become extremely horny as soon as they look at you

in the eyes. Like with the mind-controlling one, you're going to need a lot of practice as well

as power to control the stronger, unwilling minds." She clapped her hands together "Let's

start, neh? We're going to practice all night long."

The Next Morning

Even if he had sex with his mother and new lover, Mira all day long or every time he got the

chance it still didn't change the fact that he was a Shinobi with lot of duties, especially when

he was no assigned with a Gennin team for a couple of weeks until their sensei fully

recovered.

Even if Mira didn't want to lend any help to the brats of Team Seven in the first place, she

became a great supporter to the team, as she secretly helped Naruto and his mother with the

more ridiculously difficult tasks, like catching Tora the cat for the Damiyo's wife, something

that for some reason not even with the help of Hirashin Naruto was able to catch it. It wasn't

like Naruto couldn't take care of himself, but with Mira always wandering around him

unnoticed by all like this, she could provide great support on the battlefield and could even

watch his back for him.

After returning Tora to the Damiyo's wife for the third times in three days, team seven stood

in the Hokage's office ready for a new mission. Naruto and his mother stood in the back

while Sasuke, Sakura and Kiba stood in front of them, all grinning smugly. Mira, dressing in

her one piece suit, took her usual position beside Naruto with her tits sandwiched his left arm,

her arms hugging it to her chest. For once, he was glad that she wasn't playing with his cock

and messing with his will control.

"These chores are boring, Old Man. Give us something a bit more fun to do," Kiba outright

complained when the Hokage wanted to give them another D-rank Mission.

"So you want something more fun to do, Kiba-kun?" The aged Hokage asked, watching the

reactions of the other team members. Sasuke looked like he approved, though it was hard to

see through all that brooding, Sakura seemed to want to hit Kiba, though she thought better of

it. "So, Kushina, Naruto think your team is ready?"

"Team seven is ready for a C-rank mission, Hokage-sama" Kushina spoke up and Naruto

nodded his head in agreement, shocking Iruka who was doing duty in the mission office

today with the Sandaime Hokage.

"A C-rank already? Aren't they a bit inexperienced for that?" Iruka asked.

"Don't worry Iruka they are going to be fine" Naruto spoke up "Their teamwork isn't stellar

but their individual prowess may shine through"

Iruka was surprised. He wouldn't have thought that team seven would already be doing C-

ranks. Normally a team was kept doing D-ranks for at least four to six months before a sensei

decided they were ready for higher ranking missions. Even if he knew that Naruto, a

promising candidate for the future Hokage seat and his mother, the most powerful Konoha

Kunoichi could handle even an S-rank mission and protect the Gennin at the same time all by

themselves, taking on C-rank mission would be a little too soon for Team Seven.

"I see Kushina, Naruto. I think I have something fitting for you. We have a simple escort and

protection mission to Wave Country. The client is a bridge builder called Tazuna who wants

you to escort him back and protect him from bandits and the like until he finishes his bridge."

The Hokage said.

"Mission accepted, Hokage Sama." Kushina nodded her head.

"Very well. Send Tazuna in." The Hokage said loudly and an old man with a straw hat,

holding a bottle which obviously held alcohol was standing in the door.

"Ew~" Mira wined and used a hand to cover her mouth "Talk about alcohol, human surely

have no grace."

"Those kids are the protection I get? I paid for real ninjas to protect me, not those squirts." He

protested.

Naruto was in front of him before Tazuna even noticed he had left his position.

"You don't have to fear anything, Tazuna-san." Kushina spoke up "I'm and my son here is a

Jonin and two out of three of my student right here," Kiba pouted and crossed his arms "are

some of the best upcoming ninjas we have in the village. We are more than enough to deal

with a few bandits." Kushina assured Tazuna.

Naruto saw a slight tensing in Tazuna when Kushina mentioned the bandits.

"Don't you think he was lying about bandits?" Mira whispered into his ears.

"Yeah, I notice" Naruto nodded his head and said with a very low tone, that no human should

be able to hear what he was saying. His mother taught him this trick a few years ago and now

he knew why only his mother could hear "You're really sharp for a cute lover, I must say?"

"Well, I used to have a best friend who is really great at lying so yeah, I can recognize a lying

person from a mile away."

"Used to?"

"She disappeared a few years ago," Mira shook her head "saying it was necessary for her to

become more human." Naruto widened her eyes at that "Her dream is to become human you

see, her races isn't that beautiful in human eyes." He got a feeling that he knew what clan

Mira's friend came from, but decided to keep his mouth shut

"When are we leaving?" He asked therefore.

"Tomorrow morning, at seven at the main gate. We will meet you there Tazuna-san" Kushina

answered with a nod of her head before turning back to Team Seven "Alright team, return to

your house and prepare for tomorrow, I want all of you to be ready and be there at six forty

five sharp. Dismiss!"

"Hai sensei" Kiba and Sakura said while Sasuke just shrugged.

Team seven met at the main gate at six forty five sharp in the next morning and only needed

to wait ten minutes to Tazuna to arrive. Kushina had informed Sakura what she was going to

need for the mission, as the red head didn't want to waste time with her having to stock up on

things today, knowing that Sakura was the most typical girl in this world. Sasuke and Kiba

were properly well prepared for a two week long mission like this one.

They would need about two days to reach Wave Country at civilian speed.

When everyone was ready, the team set out for the mission.

For some hours nothing really interesting happened. Sakura tried to make small talk with

Tazuna, trying to find out more about Wave Country. Naruto walked at the end of the ground,

keeping a close eye on their surrounding and fully prepared to act if anything happen.

After twenty minutes Naruto suddenly noticed a strange puddle of water on the ground and

couldn't help but look up to the sky. A small smirk appeared on his face when he realized that

some action was going to take place. He could see that his mother also noticed about the

puddle of water as well.

"Mira, would you please let go of my arm for a second?" Naruto spoke up quietly.

"Hm? Sure" The Succubus nodded her head and looked around "but I don't see any threats

here?"

"That puddle of water" Naruto smirked and Mira couldn't help but take a glance at it.

"Oh, I see." Mira smiled, clapping her hands together "Ninja trick?" Naruto nodded his head

in agreement. Mira then looked up "It seems I didn't pay much attention to the weather lately,

you and your cock are really some huge distractions." Both of them chuckled at that.

The team passed the puddle without Sasuke, Kiba or Sakura reacting to it.

They obviously needed to train more on situational awareness.

It had been warm for the last week. A puddle in the middle of the road was simply impossible

with those conditions.

Soon after they had passed the puddle the two ninjas jumped out and attacked Kushina, the

one who was wearing the Konoha Chunnin vest, probably thinking that she was the strongest

with a bladed chain, tearing her to shreds, or at least that was what the others saw.

Naruto was also unsurprised when he saw his mother standing right behind Mira after using a

perfect combination between Kawarimi (Body-replacement Jutsu) and Illusion magic of

Succubi. Succubi's Illusion magic was extremely powerful and effective in battle. It was

something Naruto would love to learn from Mira. Because of his huge reserve, Naruto always

had problem with Genjutsu so having Illusion Magic as a replacement would be a great thing.

Sasuke rushed at the left opponent, Kiba at the right one and Sakura took position in front of

Tazuna with a kunai in her hand. Sasuke pinned the chain of the two ninjas, who wore

breathing masks and had Kiri headbands, to a tree with a shuriken, which he enforced with a

kunai. The two Gennin soon involved their opponents in a Taijutsu fight, while the ninja tried

to get past him all the time Sasuke and Kiba, who came from a clan of strong Taijutsu

fighters were obviously on the offensive side rather than defensive.

Just when the other ninja tried to attack back, this time aiming for the kill, Kushina and

Naruto appeared and took care of the ninja, knocking them out simply

Sakura looked immensely relieved that Kushina was still alive.

"Good job, everybody. That was a perfectly executed reaction to an ambush?" Kushina said

with a smile, making Kiba grin broadly while cheering out with his dog. Sasuke looked

indifferent, completely ignore the huge praises from his biggest fan-girl.

Kushina then turned to Tazuna.

"You didn't tell us that ninjas were after you Tazuna-san; we were only informed about

bandits and the like." shee confronted Tazuna.

"I don't know what you're talking about." Tazuna tried to evade.

"No use hiding anymore Tazuna-san. We could see that you're not very comfortable when my

mother mentioned bandits during the meeting yesterday." Naruto spoke up "Were they after

one of us or after you? Those ninja tried to get to you from the start you know. So I want a

very good explanation for this or we'll take our team back to Konoha. With you lying about

the rank of the mission, you broke the contract you made with Konoha." he informed the

bridge builder.

"Okay, there is a super dangerous man after my life. You've probably heard about him. His

name is Gato." Tazuna confessed.

"I bet he is short, fat and bald" Mira voiced up her opinion, which could only be heard by

Naruto and Kushina

"President of Gato Shipping currently ranked fifth richest man in the elemental nations."

Naruto nodded his head "Suspected to be involved in criminal activities, but it could never be

proven."

"Yes, that's him. He came to Wave Country a bit more than a year ago. First we didn't think

anything about it, but he soon had bought up all the shipping industry of our nation. You see

Wave Country is an island so we are dependent on the shipping to get goods. But that wasn't

the worst part. He used his monopoly to drain the country dry. The people live in poverty.

Many lost their houses to Gato. Who protests is killed. He takes what he wants with his hired

thugs making sure nobody dares to oppose him. His shipping business covers his criminal

activities. He deals with drugs, alcoholics, rare goods even slaves. Everything that brings him

money. The only thing he fears is the bridge I'm building. If I finish my bridge, Wave

Country can break his monopoly and get back to strength." Tazuna said.

"But why didn't you just tell the truth?" Sakura asked.

"I don't think Wave have any for a higher rank mission other than C-rank, am I right?"

Kushina asked and Tazuna nodded his head "You poured all your money in the bridge to get

their freedom. I guess in the recent past Gato had tried to take Tazuna out so that he sneaked

out of the Country with all the money the people could get together to hire a few ninjas. He

hoped he would get ninjas strong enough to protect him while he finished the bridge and if

Gato had just used his thugs he would even have been lucky that that was true."

Naruto then pointed to the two unconscious ninja "But those two are the demon brothers,

missing ninja from Kiri. B-ranked in the bingo book, bounty for one 1.000.000 ryo, bounty

for both 3.000.000 ryo." Naruto said "That's a lot of money."

Tazuna nodded. "He's right. In the past Gato only used thugs. There are rumors that he hates

ninjas because they are so expensive. I wasn't sure if he would hire ninja to take me out. And

we really are super poor. Even our Daimyo have no money left for us. All the money I gave

Konoha is from the people. And it is all we could afford. We put everything else into the

bridge; it's our only hope." Tazuna said solemnly.

"You still shouldn't have lied. If you had told the Hokage the problem he would have come

up with a solution." Kushina said with a sigh "Now we still have the problem that this

mission is too much for my students."

"I am for continuing, Kushina-sensei. This is not just a mission where the client wanted to

save money. This is about a whole country going down the drain because one greedy bastard

wants to fill his pockets even more than he already has. And we can't afford that people think

Konoha would let a country fall to such a man. We are strong enough to continue." Kiba cried

out confidently

"Hmph, Kiba is right. We are strong enough, I vote we continue." Sasuke said, already

thinking about what kind of fighting experience he would get.

Sakura looked unsure, but she didn't want to disappoint Sasuke. And the people of Wave

obviously needed help.

"I agree." She said.

"You are aware that if we continue, our next opponent won't be Chunin level, but more likely

a jonin like me?" Naruto asked "You know, I can take you all back to Konoha in a second."

All three nodded.

"I see" Naruto smiled.

"Oh! These brats are a lot more than I thought." Mira giggled "Human is so interesting."

"Alright, we will continue. But once Wave Country gets back to its feet you'll have to pay the

difference to the mission rank this will develop into." Kushina told Tazuna with a small

smile.

"Of course, thank you so much." He said gratefully.

After Naruto transported the two Demon-brothers back to Konoha, straight into the prison,

the journey continued without incidents until they reached the coast where Tazuna had

organized for a boat to transport them over to Wave Country. The man who stirred the boat

was extremely nervous, despite them having cover from the early morning fog. When they

passed the bridge, Naruto couldn't help but let out a soft whistle.

"That really is one impressive bridge." He said when he saw the bridge

"Thanks. I told you I'm a super bridge builder." Tazuna answered.

"How far is your home from here, Tazuna-san?" Kushina asked, sitting beside her son.

"About one and a half hours." Tazuna answered.

"Be on guard. It's probable that we will encounter opposition before we reach Tazuna's

home." Kushina warned all of them. Her students nodded.

"Naruto-sama," Naruto suddenly turned to Mira, who was flying beside the boat "I'm

hungry." She wined playfully and Naruto could only look at her in disbelief "Can I have some

snacks?" she asked seductively and pulled her suit out of the way to show him her breasts.

"Wait wait Mira, can you see that I'm busy here?" He asked "Plus, you already got enough

this morning. I thought you said a mouthful of my sperm is enough for you to survive a

month? I don't make me get to the point of how many times I came in your mouth."

"But I still want more." Mira pouted and hugged him on his head, pressing her breasts to his

face.

"Naruto-kun, you have to remember that she is a princess who is spoiled and raised with men

ganging up around her bed to have a chance of feeding her." Kushina giggled at that and

looked at her son and his lover "She wasn't use to getting denial from men, so she will keep

bugging you until you accept you know." She then smiled "If you still want to stay here and

continue the mission, I recommend you to use that trick."

"Oh," Naruto slapped his forehead "I nearly forget about that."

"What trick are you guys talking about?" Mira asked, tilting her head to the side in confusion.

"Take this Mira." Naruto handed her a tri-pronged kunai with the mark for Hirashin on the

handle "You go ahead and find a nice spot and your meal will be served immediately." He

then raised his fingers "You have fifty seconds until your snacks arrive."

"Aye!" Mira cried out and shot away with extremely speed, creating shockwave that created

large wave knocked the boat side to side.

"What the hell was that!?" Kiba cried out in shock and tried to hang on for dear life.

"And she said she isn't a fighter" Naruto groaned and Kushina chuckled.

Line Break

Mira stabbed the kunai onto a tree after finding for herself a wide area with soft greensward

on the ground and trees surrounded around her.

Thought she didn't have to wait long for her 'snacks' to arrive.

Because exactly fifty seconds later, three Naruto suddenly appeared in front of her in three

golden flashes, with an arrogant grin on their face. Mira was so surprised at their appearance

that she took a step back in surprise and yelped out in shock.

"What the...?!" She cried while pointing at the Naruto "T-three Naruto... How?!"

"Kage bushin no Jutsu" the Naruto in the middle, Naruto1 said "A Ninjutsu that allow the

boss to create real clones of himself" He said.

"For real?" Mira asked in shock "Ninja has a trick like that?"

"Of course." Naruto2 nodded his head "This trick is very useful for information gathering and

training, but also fucking." The Naruto then looked at each other and then nodded their head

in agreement before starting to remove their clothes at once "Prepare yourself bitch, because

we're going to fuck you really good" With that, they pulled their pants down and exposed

their flaccid dick.

Mira's eyes nearly bugled out of their sockets when she saw their delicious muscular bodies,

three soft, yet still very impressive dicks and large orange-size six testicles came into view.

Naruto and his dick was simply her best fuck, now there were three Naruto standing totally

naked in front of her, ready to gang up on their white haired succubus to give Mira her best

gangbang ever.

To say she was extremely turned on and horny was a huge understatement, as she could feel

her pussy burning for their cocks.

A smirk appeared then appeared on her face and Mira took a step forward to grab Naruto2

and 3's dicks, gently stroking them with her hands and let the clones groped her butt and her

tits, knowing that the fun was about to start. The Succubi Princess couldn't help but groan out

in delight when she got two hands on her ass cheeks, two hands playing with her tits and

another gently rubbing her pussy through the silk fabric of her dark red suit "Let's have a lot

of fun, shall we boys?" She asked and leaned her head forward to kiss the middle clone.

Neither of them was trying to go slow with the kiss, with their tongue wrestling with each

other between their mouths.

She seriously needed to tell the other succubuses about this.

"On your knees, Mira" Naruto1 said and pushed her back, pushing her down to her knees in

front of him with his cock at her eyes level, still holding on to the other clones' dicks "You

have to work if you want to have your meal."

"Three fucking cocks" Mira giggled as the ones she was holding on finally stood up and

became hard as the diamond pole with her handjob skills "You should just tell me about this

ninja trick of yours sooner, think about all the fun we can have." She took the semi-hard dick

in front of her face into her mouth and sucked gently, eagering to make the last one just as

hard as the other two.

"Well, you never asked, didn't you?" Naruto3 smirked, snaking his hand down to grope her

right breast, squeezing it within his hand.

Mira released Naruto1's cock and turned to him, pouting "But I didn't know." She then took

his cock into her mouth and licked wildly around his pole. She sucked each cock in turn,

taking them into her mouth, wrapping her tongue around them, swallowing them all down her

throat with their hands still playing with her breasts, pinching her nipples.

It didn't take long for her to make the first clone cum, just like how she usually did to the

original

After giving a loud moan of pleasure and pushing her head down, making her take the head

of his member into her mouth, the middle Naruto exploded with cum load. Mira grinned

around the cock and pulled back until only the head remained in her mouth, intentionally let

some spilled down on her massive bosom... She took her time to taste his seed, playing with

it with her tongue, enjoying the feeling of a hot thick liquid in her mouth, finding it just as

delicious as the original's come.

Pulling back, Mira collected what was on her lips and chin with her tongue and took them in

her mouth as well, her hands rubbing the essence on her tits into her skin like she was

massaging oil onto her breasts.

"Thank you, Naruto-sama, your cum is definitely the best." She purred lustfully before

poking on the other two dicks "Aw~, I guess you two really want to come now, don't you?"

she giggled when they twitched mightily in front of her face "Then I will let you two fuck me

first then." After saying that, Mira stood up and removed the red suit from her body, walking

toward Naruto2 before throwing herself on his body. Getting the idea Naruto2 pulled his hip

back to prepare and caught her in his hand, at the same time thrusting his hip forward and

literally impaled himself into her pussy. Mira moaned and howled in pleasure, with her eyes

rolled into the back of her head at the rough invasion.

Mira then wrapped her long legs around his waist and her arms around his neck to keep both

of them as close as possible, her large breasts pressed tightly against his chest. The young

man then began thrusting into her pussy while raising and lowering her body onto his cock in

a rhythm with his thrusts. Mira could only howl in pleasure as the first orgasm rocked her

whole body and drooled on his shoulder when he finally punched into her womb.

Her moaning increased even further when the third clone entered her asshole, stretching her

there deliciously. Mira then bended her back a little, giving the clone fucking her asshole

some room to play with her tits, which he started doing almost immediately.

The princess succubi was moaning in absolute pleasure as she was double penetrated by her

lover, or lovers in this case and had one of them fondling and squeezing her large breasts, she

then brought her head up and pulled the Naruto fucking her pussy in a deep kiss and started

another battle of the tongues. Her pussy and ass clamped tighter and tighter around both

cocks that fucked her slutty holes.

Her extremely tight holes soon brought both clones to their own releases and with loud

moans of pleasure they came, sending loads after loads of cum into her body... the Naruto

kept the vixen between them for some time, allowing themselves to fully release into her and

Mira to come down from her orgasmic high.

After finishing cumming, Naruto2 and Naruto3 pulled their cocks from her body, letting her

drop freely down to the ground while giggling perversely at the amount of sperm they both

released into her body.

"You're next honey" Her tails shot out and wrapped around Naruto1's waist, pulling him to

her and pushing her down to the ground. Mira then jumped on him and roughly slammed

herself down to his cock, taking all thirteen inches into her without hesitation. As her bum

lied on his thighs, she beckoned the other two to come over and wrapped her hands around

their cocks, stroking them both and giving the head of each of them a gentle suck with her

tongue licking their tips.

"Oh, ye-e-es, Naru-uto-o-sa-a-ama!" Mira moaned out loudly as he started fucking her hard

and fast, at the same time letting Mira ride him like a wild cowgirl. She concentrated on the

two cocks in front of her, sucking one and stroking the other, alternating between them about

every minute or so or sometimes, she simply licked the tips of both members at the same time

after bringing them together in front of her face, swirling her tongue around the massive dick

heads.

Soon, she was rewarded again with two massive streams of sperm straight to her face and her

pussy stuffed with sperm again.

"I'll take her ass next guy. She loves having fat cock up her shithole!"

"I want to try her pussy next!"

"Guys, her blowjob is absolutely wonderful, I wouldn't mind having her mouth suck my dick

again."

Mira could only smile lustfully at the sight of three Naruto fighting over her, as she knew that

she was definitely going to get what she want.

How Naruto is protecting Tsunami at home

Chapter 4.5

How Naruto is protecting Tsunami at home

True to his mother's words, the next morning she took Team Seven to the nearby forest for

training. Naruto was there sitting on a tree with Mira sitting next to him, watching Kushina

teach the Gennin how to properly control their chakra, by a very tradition training: 'tree

climbing ', of course after leaving a clone at Tazuna's house to watch over Tsunami.

But he had the basic idea of what his clone was doing with the black haired MILF, so he

would always send another one to the house every time the previous clone was popped away.

Naruto didn't expect Tsunami to be a nymphomaniac, but after how she was broken by him

and Mira last night, he would feel surprise that she wasn't going to turn into one. Years

without a man in the bed with her, an Incubus came over and gave her the unmatchable

pleasure was definitely just too much for any human women to handle

About the training, Sakura managed to do it on the first try, since she had a much better

chakra control than the other two, as well as a smaller chakra reserve since she came from a

civilian family. Sasuke could climb a few feet before stopping and Kiba didn't have any luck

on his first tries, but the two were very determine to do it so they tried and tried.

He used to have the same problem when he first tried this training, as the trees would always

explode the moment he put his foot on them, since his chakra reserve was too large and little

to no control over his energy back then. After a few days he managed to do it with the help of

his mother and now his chakra control was perfect.

"And then the mutt felt again." Mira giggled when Kiba felt headfirst down to the ground

again, once again only managed to climb a few feet higher than his first try "This trick must

be harder than I thought." The succubus said, turning to Naruto. Her main focus, however,

wasn't Team Seven and their training, but the flaccid, yet still very impressive cock in her

hand.

"Well, you will need a full concentration to keep the perfect amount of chakra use to stick

your feet to the tree. Too much chakra and you will destroy the tree, too little and your feet

won't stick to it at all." Naruto explained and blinked twice when another memories hit the

back of his mind again. It seemed Tsunami just managed to pop away his clone again, after

making him creampie her tits with his huge loads.

"Oh my, I guess another clone of yours just disappear." Mira asked when she felt his cock

throb in her hand, getting a nod from him "Tsunami-chan definitely having her fun right

now...I am so jealous."

"Don't worry Mira, we will have plenty of time to have fun later." Naruto grinned and crossed

his fingers together in a handseal, creating a new clone that soon teleport away using

Hirashin to get to Tsunami's house with a smug grin on his face.

"Alright." Mira nodded her head and kissed the tip his cock, as if she was worshiping it.

[At the same time- Tazuna's house]

The newly created Clone Naruto appeared in Tsunami's bedroom in a flash of yellow and

smirked when he saw a cum coated Tsunami kneeling on the bed, with both hands pushing

her big tits toward her face and licking the sperm the previous Naruto shot on them. His cock

got hard instantly and twitched madly in his pant at the sight of the slutty woman, wearing

her old wedding dress but was modified to look extremely erotic. It was made of silk and

flowery laces. The necklines of her dress dipped to below her breasts, completely exposing

her incredible firm bosom and perked nipples. The trailing white skirts were nigh translucent,

and there were vertical slits up the front and back, revealing her pussy and ass for him to

drink in with his eyes.

He knew why his fellow clones didn't bother to get her naked, because the dress was simply a

massive turn on for them.

"Thank boss, for bringing me to this world." Clone Naruto said stupidly, gaining the attention

of the black haired woman.

A seductive smile appeared on her face when she saw him and she then raised her hand to

make the come-over gesture with her index finger, saying:

"Come here, honey." She said sultrily "Come and fuck your bride."

"Bloody hell. I'm coming!" the clone said excitedly and hurriedly removed his clothes,

throwing his shirt and pant away to stand completely naked in the room, with his cock hard

and standing tall in front of him.

He then jumped on the bed and kneeled down in front of Tsunami, smashing his lips against

hers and inserted his tongue into her mouth, one hand groping her tit and the other furiously

fingering her pussy, getting the cum of the latest clone out to make room for him. Tsunami

was pushed down to the bed in the same position and happily returned to favor by kissing

him back and stroke the underside of his cock, as well as fondling his massive family jewels.

His muscular body easily pinched her down and kept her in the place he wanted.

Naruto mentally smirked when he felt his cock met her pussy lips and thrust his hip forward

just a little to insert the head of his cock into her tight fold. Even after being fucked by

several clones before him, Tsunami was still crazing for more and her pussy was still as tight

as ever for him, an unique trait that was hard to find on normal human women nowadays.

Naruto only waited until Tsunami finally wrapped her legs around his waist to thrust his cock

into her abused pussy, going ball-deep in one single thrust and moaned out at her tight tunnel

clenched tightly around his cock. All Tsunami could do was moan, as the thirteen inches

piece of meat once again stretched her to the limit and filled her full like never before. He

then pulled his hips back before slamming forward into the now moaning woman, setting an

immediate and brutal pace as he started fucking her.

For the next ten minutes, Tsunami could only moan as her body had experienced so many

orgasms she'd was fairly certain she'd lost the ability to count, much less keep track of the

amount rapidly adding up. He was fucking her so good, the speed was so intense and almost

inhuman, just like how his brothers fucked her and played with her. Each clone could cum at

least four times before disappearing, so she would always make sure the clone creampied her

inside through both three holes and her tits as well before he was replaced by a brand new

clone.

"Cumming!" Clone Naruto cried out and slammed his hip down as hard as he could, groaning

out in pleasure as he exploded into her. But instead of stopping and enjoying the feeling, he

raised his hip and started to fuck her while cumming like a broken hose into her again,

making Tsunami scream out as she rapidly came around his cock.

After he was done, Naruto pulled his cock out of her pussy and flipped Tsunami around and

got her on her knees, taking a hold of her arms he pulled them back by the elbow, causing her

back to arch slightly and her breasts to jut out and bounce. He pulled his hips back before

slamming forward into the now screaming women's anus, setting an immediate and fast pace

as he started fucking her in the ass. The fucking Naruto gave her caused her boobs to bounce

up and down rapidly striking her chin.

Line Break

While his clone was having a lot of fun times with Tsunami, the original Naruto also got

enough of Mira's teasing and just stripped his pants down and pinned the Succubus against a

tree, fucking her ass from behind with his hands groping and pulling on her large melons.

Mira was in the state of constant moaning and cumming, having Naruto treat her just the way

she want with his cock blurring in and out of her pussy. After a whole half an hour of staying

like this, Naruto pulled his dick out of her cunt and stabbed it into her anus, making Mira

throw her head back with her tongue shot out of her mouth, the pleasure washed through was

too much for her to handle and Mira couldn't stop herself from peeing and squirting at the

same time.

"Oh, here you two are." Kushina made herself know to her son and the Succubus princess,

stepping pass the barrier Mira put up in order to keep her lustful moans and screams away

from the entire forest "Ara, the two of you have it bad again." She couldn't help but giggle

when she saw Mira's reactions to her son rough pounding, and it turned her on a lot just by

imaging herself in her successor's daughter.

It wasn't like she hadn't had the same treatment before, kind of opposite actually. But Kushina

would never get bored of the sex, especially when the one who was fucking her was her son,

who took his time fucking her brain out like she was just his most favorite cum-dumpster, not

his beloved mother.

"Oh hey mom!" Naruto smiled, slowing down just a little but taking his time playing with

Mira's melon size tits "You done teaching them?"

"Yes, but Kiba and Sasuke is still there, continuing training." Kushina nodded her head

"Sakura went to protect Tazuna so it give me plenty of time to spend with my son." She went

to kiss him, rolling her tongue around his.

"Aren't you a bit irresponsible?" he asked with a small smirk, removing one hand from Mira's

breast and put it on his mother's larger and firmer one "What if Zabuza decides to strike

again, she has the least chance against an professional assassin like that."

"Relax, honey, I let a clone carry your Hirashin mark follow her, don't worry." Kushina

stepped back and started to remove her clothes "So, how about you give your mother an

outdoor fuck right now?" when she was completely naked, she made a sexy pose with her

hands on her hip.

"Let's me finish this girl first, then I will give you what you want." With that, he increased the

speed of his hip back to inhuman but this time he let loose and creamed Mira's inside with his

sperm. He was about to have one of the greatest outdoor sex ever with two incredible busty

women.

End of Chapter 4.5

rouge

Naruto: Lemon Chronicle of the Incubus Prince

Chapter 5

Rogue Yuki-Onna

"Good boy! Oh! Good boy!" Kushina moaned out shamelessly with the sluttiest Ahegao

smile on her face "Don't stop! It's so good! Oh yes! Oh yes! You're fucking your mother so

hard Naruto!" Her body orgasmed violently with each of his thrust, flinching with every slap

of his hip against her ass. Holding herself up with only three limbs, she reached down and

felt his balls. She yelped when he began ramming faster, feeling up his scrotum, large and full

of white boy cream, always ready to explode into her.

Naruto was having yet another fucking session with his beloved mother, fucking his mother

mercilessly from behind in a doggy style position, his hip moving at inhuman speed. Kushina

was in her full Succubus form to make thing even more exciting for them. Unlike Mira who

gained a demonic, yet slutty appearance, Naruto's mother's true form wasn't that different

from her normal form. Kushina's read hair was longer, now reaching down to her ankles; her

eyes changed color from brown to green and became slit much, her nails and canine teeth

grew longer and sharper. Of course, other than her horns, Kushina also had a long, thin, and

ended with a heart-shaped tip tail just like Mira

Speaking of the Succubus Princess, Mira had returned to the Demon Realm to visit her

mother. Mira loved to spend her time around him, but family was also important and she

needed to return to inform her mother, Eva what she was doing before the Queen could get

worried about her daughter's safety.

"You're dick is incredible...give it to me...give me your dick," He grabbed the back of her red

hair and growled into her ear, her body seemed to shy away from his Incubus' prowess, but he

wasn't going to let her go anywhere until he was fully satisfied "...yes...oh, you're

wonderful...You're so deep...so fucking deep..." She mewled in a feline voice that seemed to

drive him all the wilder. She squeezed him while he was deep inside of her, soaking him with

her womanly fluids, her own lustful heat.

It was a good thing that she put on a barrier around their room, or else the sound of the their

fleshes hit against each other and the bed being shaken violently would be more than enough

to wake the whole house up. Their room reeked with the smell of their sex, but it only turned

the two of them on more.

Eventually, with one final howl of pleasure, Naruto slammed his cock into her womb with

such force that he knocked her face-first down to their bed, grunting as he dumped his load

into her. Kushina licked her lips at the thought of getting knocked up by her own son, feeling

his hot sperm expanded her overstuffed womb and slightly increased the size of her belly.

It was hot, enough to make her brain melt and cum one more time around his cock. Very little

demons could cum this much, and Succubus tended to avoid having sex with them since

nearly all of that numbers were ungrateful and arrogant beasts, not to mention very ugly for

their taste. Maybe it was because of her gene in his blood, or Naruto was simply that amazing

and awesome.

With the final thrust, Naruto withdrew his cock from his mother's pussy and turned her body

around with his hand on the top of her head, feeding his cock into her mouth and moaning as

Kushina wrapped her tongue around his length and took it deeper into her mouth.

"Aren't you a good cock-sucker" Naruto smirked and thrust his hip slightly, putting more and

more inches of his dick into her mouth before abruptly pulling out, grabbing the base of his

cock with his other hand and beat it against her cheek "I wonder how many cocks you have

sucked to be this good."

"Let's just say it was more than the amount of women you have fucked in your life to know

that your mother is the best in business." Kushina purred and licked the side of his dick,

trailing her tongue up and then down his length.

"Damn, even I had forgot how many women I had been with." Naruto smirked and stuffed his

mother's mouth with his cock again, which she happily welcomed and started sucking on it

again "But yeah, you're indeed the best." Naruto threw his head back, pulling his mother's

head to him until her nose pressed tightly against his pelvis.

The telltale swelling a few seconds later told her that he was about to explode... and explode

he did. Naruto shot out massive spurts, before he began spraying his seed into her mouth like

a fire hose. What's more was that each of the spurts alone was more than most men let loose

through their entire orgasm. She had to swallow at an insane pace just to keep up, barely

being able to do such as cum leaked out of the edges of her mouth. When he finally let her

go, she pulled back taking in heaping breaths of air as she collapsed to the ground, cum

leaking from her mouth as she coughed up several cups of his seed onto the floor.

"It seems you're starting coming a lot more than before, Naruto" Kushina cooed excitedly

before putting his cock into her mouth again, this time she made sure that his dick would coat

in as much of her saliva as possible "Since you have come that much, I hope these boys still

have plenty inside them."

"Are you kidding me?" Naruto smirked slyly, lifting her up before throwing her onto the bed,

which they barely used this morning on her front. He gripped her hip and lifted her ass up,

putting her in the doggy style position with her face and chest still lying on the bed "I'm

going to make sure that you're drown in my sperm this time mom." Both mother and son

moaned out lustfully when Naruto thrust his dick into her asshole, about to start yet another

fucking session between them.

However, before the two of them could do anything further than that, their attention was

drawn to the floor of their room when a white, glowing circle with multi unknown symbols

suddenly appeared. From there, an incredible beautiful and attractive woman, with the kind

of body that would make Naruto's cock excite and twitch madly inside of his mother,

appeared. She had silver hair, matching sharp eyes and creamy skin. Her hair, which flowed

all the way down to her back, features a long braid on each side with small blue bows at the

ends, while the rest was let down, ending in twin braids.

The woman was wearing a what appeared to be a tight, black business suit and white shirt

underneath, with two buttons left undone and exposed a fair amount of her generous

cleavage. She was also wearing a long, silky green scarf around her neck.

"Oh, sorry for interrupting, Kushina-sama." She said apologetically after realizing what was

going on, turning around facing away from them with a small blush on her face.

"Oh that's alright, don't be so shy." Kushina giggled while waving her hand around, her tail

wrapped around Naruto's hip, preventing him from pulling out, letting him know that she

wouldn't mind if someone was watching them having sex "You're Grayfia Lucifuge, aren't

you?"

"Yes Kushina-sama." The woman slowly turned around and gave a nod of her head.

"Grayfia, this is my son Naruto Uzumaki." Kushina introduced casually as Naruto turned

them around so Kushina could face Grayfia directly "Naruto, this is Grayfia Lucifuge, she is

the head of Yuki-Onna Clan." The silver haired woman bowed her head, greeting him

respectfully "I used to know her mother." Kushina added

"Yuki-Onna?" Naruto asked in surprise as he was slowly moving his cock inside his mother's

anus "You mean those women who charm before killing men in a heavy snow storm?"

"It's an ancient tradition, but you're right." Grayfia nodded her head.

"So, can I ask why you're here Grayfia?" Kushina asked before making a sly smile "Don't tell

me that the rumor about my son already spread all over the demon world and now every

female Youkai is coming to have a taste of him." Her words soon turned to moan as Naruto

speed up his thrust and filled his hands with her large tits.

"I actually came here for business Kushina-sama. I heard from Mirajane that you were

around this area so I thought it would be best if I came to ask you first." Grayfia shook her

head before saying "Had you and your son encountered with any ice-user female, around

seventeen and eighteen year old these past few days?" Grayfia questioned, trying to ignore

the lustful moan coming from the former Queen of succubus. They were sex demons, she had

no right to prevent them from having sex, even in other's presence.

"Can't recall, why?" Naruto answered for his mother as he tore through her body with fast

and rough thrusts.

"There are some reports about an abnormal amount of Yuki-Onna's youki around this area of

the human world." Grayfia explained "If it's true, then I'm sure that there is a rogue Yuki-

Onna somewhere..." she was stopped when Naruto was suddenly pushed away from his

mother, who then shot up and claimed her lips around his dick. The short moment gave

Grayfia a glimpse of one of the thickest and biggest cock she had ever saw on a humanoid

being like him. It made her gulp after seeing just how much Kushina's cheeks were stretched

to contain his sperm

"I see..." Naruto said with his hand on the top of his mother's head. It was too bad that he

didn't get to cum inside her anus, but feeding his mother wasn't so bad either "I'm sure that if

I and my mother see a Yuki-Onna around, you'll be the first to know." After that, he pulled

his cock out of his mother by pulling her head back, grinning and beating her cheek with his

cock, making Kushina purr excitedly at that.

"I see... so I thank you for that." Grayfia wisely left before any of them could smell her

arousal and get excited about it. She knew better than being careless around sex demons like

the former Queen of Makai and her son.

"Damn that ice-chick was hot." Naruto grinned as Kushina wrapped her tits around his cock,

showing no intention of letting his dick rest "I wouldn't mind banging that hot ass of hers."

"I see, then I will have to make sure you've another meeting with her in the future" Kushina

giggled slyly "Our fucking definitely turned her on, the sight of your dick was planted in her

mind now, sooner or later she'll come to have a piece of you."

"Nice..." Naruto smirked before asking "Anyway, with a rouge Yuki-Onna around, I don't

think it's a good idea if we continue to let Team Seven train around here?" A loosed Succubus

Princess wandering around a village could kill more than fifty men in two weeks, a Yuki-

Onna could definitely cause that much damage, since they too, in a way or another, shared

the same interest in men.

"True, but since there were no snowstorm around here and the weather is hot," Kushina said

while rolling her tits around his cock "I don't think that girl is going to be too much of a

trouble. Either she is very weak or she isn't aware that she is a Yuki-Onna. Just like you, after

knowing that you're an Incubus, you would start to emit stronger pheromone to attract

female." Kushina shrugged "Hanyou like you isn't that uncommon nowadays."

"I see." Naruto nodded his head in understanding before pushing his mother away, this time

he was the one who climbed on her chest and slammed his cock back into her overused

pussy, making Kushina throw her head back with a fucked stupid smile "Oh~, nice and hot,

just like how I like it." He grinned before starting fucking her again.

Morning arrived and after having breakfast with Tazuna's family, and gave Tsunami the

'breakfast' she wanted, Naruto and Kushina and Team Seven left for training as well as

protecting the bridge builder. Since training for Team Seven was very important, Kushina left

a clone of herself with Naruto to keep her son companied before leaving for her students.

Naruto decided to spend sometimes in the morning to train, more or less to keep his head

clear from his hormones.

Though, he was starting to miss Mira and her slutty nature.

Line Break

Haku, an attractive young woman with beautiful black haired and matching eyes hummed a

soft tone as she kneeled down to the ground and gathered the herbs necessary to make the

remedy for her master, Zabuza, who was still recovering from the battle against Kushina

Uzumaki and her son Naruto.

Kushina was known as the strongest Kunoichi of Elemental Nations, but Haku would never

expect the red head woman to be that strong. She outmatched her master in Kenjutsu and if

not for tricks, Zabuza would have lost miserably from the first few minutes. He managed to

trap the woman inside a water prison by threatening her students life, thinking that he could

finally get the head of Tazuna for Gato until her son, Naruto stepped into the fight.

The tales of his father were still being told until this day and Naruto had truly lived up to his

legacy as the second Yellow Flash of Konoha. He toyed with her master like he was a child

before defeating Zabuza as easy as walking around the park. If she didn't interfere, she didn't

know if her master would still be alive now.

Haku stood up and left the place, walking through the forest to return to Zabuza's shelter.

Next time her master face off against them, she would definitely join him, to increase the

chance of winning for Zabuza. She had already grabbed the fighting styles of both Uzumaki

and hoped that it would be enough for her to defeat them.

Suddenly, when she was about to cross a wide area, her nose picked up a strange, but not bad

scent in the air. Her body suddenly heated up in a way she had never felt before, especially to

the area between her legs. Curiosity took the better of her and Haku followed the scent to its

source, trying to find out which could release such arousing smell like that.

Haku soon found her answer and couldn't stop herself from gaping like a little fish as what

she was seeing.

There, she saw Naruto, the second Yellow Flash of Konoha and his mother, both as naked as

the day they were born, lying on the grass with Kushina's head pounding on his lap, sucking

the biggest, thickest and longest dick she had ever seen in her life, if she'd ever seen one

before.

The moment she laid her eyes on him, she felt herself getting dizzy and couldn't help but

imagine herself in his mother's position, wondering that if she could deepthroat that dick just

like what Kushina was doing. It was wrong to think about her enemies that way, but no

matter how she tried she couldn't shake those thoughts off her head.

They were threats to her master and Haku knew they had to be removed. Maybe when the

two of them were like this, she could kill them Makyō Hyōshō. Naruto could be extremely

fast, something she could never compare even with her best but she got the element of

surprise with her this time. There was no way he could react to her speed in that condition.

However, before she could even make a handseal, less than a blink of an eye another Naruto,

pretty much as naked as the other suddenly appeared before her and looked straight into her

eyes. His eyes then glowed blue for a second before Haku felt her mind went black.

"Well, I thought mom's barrier is going to keep the human away? But aren't you a pretty little

think?" Naruto asked as he put his hand on her right breast and squeezed it slightly, making

Haku moan "C-cup, not too bad. What is your name?" The clone asked as he took his hand

back.

"My name is Haku," said Haku, her mind automatically reacted to his question. Naruto raised

an eyebrow at this before smiling slyly.

"A nice name." Naruto nodded his head "and aren't you too pretty for being Zabuza's

underling?" the clone asked as he walked around Haku, eyeing her body hid behind the

kimono she was wearing. Haku was that hunter-nin who arrived to 'kill' Zabuza before

Naruto could get his hand on him. It didn't take long for both Uzumaki to realize Zabuza was

still alive and that hunter-nin was in truth his minion.

"Yes Naruto-sama," said Haku simply.

"Good." Naruto nodded his head before saying "Listen, no one, even Zabuza is allowed to

know of this meeting. You will continue to serve him like usual until the time is right to

switch to my side. Understand?" Haku nodded her head again. The effect of Succubus' charm

was simply too powerful for an untrained mind like Haku to resist.

"I understand Naruto-sama," again she nodded her head submissively.

"Alright, come with me so I can introduce you to boss." The clone grabbed Haku's hand and

pulled her toward his boss and Clone Kushina "Hey boss, guess who this is?" Naruto opened

one of his eyes and looked at his clones and Haku.

"Well well, if it isn't that mysterious missing-nin" Naruto said as he sat up and removed

Clone Kushina's face from his cock, stroking her cheek as she snuggled lovingly against his

huge member "You placed spell on her?"

"Yes, and she'll do whatever we tell her to do." The clone smirked smugly and turned to Haku

"Strip." And she did what she was told, from her kimono to her undergarment, until there was

no piece of clothing left on her body.

"Nice body." Naruto licked his lip as he looked at Haku's nude form. She had a hourglass

shape figure, though her breasts weren't nowhere as huge as his lover Mirajane or his mother,

but Naruto bet that they could fit in his hand nicely.

Standing up, Naruto walked to Haku and placed a hand on her ass, pulling her body to him

and crashed his lips against hers, literally violating her mouth with his tongue. He squeezed

her ass, groped her tits, feeling her tone stomach with his dick which was sandwiched

between their nude body... examining every bit of her body before coming to a conclusion.

"This girl is definitely a nice-fuck." Naruto turned to his clone and said "You go play with

Kushina, I will take it from here."

"Aye boss!" The clone grinned and literally thrown himself at his mother's clone, impaling

his dick into her fold and pounding his dick into her like a wild animal. In response, Kushina

wrapped her legs around his waist and smashed her hip against his to meet with his merciless

thrusts.

"What do you want me to do, Naruto-sama?" Haku asked as she ran her hand on his cock.

Her touches were cold, but the heat of his dick easily countered.

"On your knees and work my cock." Naruto said as he then placed his hands on the top of her

head and made her kneel before him, making Haku come face to face with his massive prick

Naruto looked down at Haku who had a nervous, yet hungry look in her eyes. She then reach

her hand out and wrapped her fingers around the head of his huge cock. She was completely

infatuated with his massive cock. She was measuring it with her hands, lifting it to examine

his big balls and found herself drooling at the size of his sack, bloating with fresh cum.

Naruto leaned forward so that his cock slid along her cheek leaving a trail of pre-cum from

her chin to her ear.

Naruto grabbed the back of her head and pulled her nose into his crotch. Haku closed her

eyes and moaned slightly as she took a big whiff. The Ice-user then pulled back and looked

up at him. Her lips trembled as she leaned forward and kissed the head, as a sign of complete

submission. She kept her lips on the head staring up at him with her big doe like eyes, then

began licking around the fat head of Naruto's cock.

Haku was very enthusiastic as she explored every inch of his massive cock with her tongue.

She licked up his pre-cum and even teased his pee-slit. She licked the base of the head, she

licked up and down his thick shaft, coating it with her saliva. She even licked under his cock

down to his balls, kissing and licking them clean also before working her way back up and

taking the head into her mouth, began sucking on about four inches of his cock and she then

proceeded to push more in.

"Shit!" Naruto groaned "You're a virgin, aren't you?"

"Yes Naruto-sama," Haku pulled back and nodded her head at him

"Then it's natural skills then." Naruto grinned and before she could remove her succulent lips

Naruto grabbed her head and started pushing down, forcing his cock head past her lips and

into her throat, catching her off guard. Grabbing a hand full of hair on top of Haku's head and

grasping her below the jaw, Naruto fucked the missing-nin hunter's face onto his dick, trying

desperately to cum as soon as possible.

The obscene sounds coming from her cock stuffed throat were music to Naruto's ears as he

continued to stretch her jaw and throat to the limits; and all she could do was grip his knees

and try to hold on. Her eyes then bugged out when she felt Naruto's cock swell before she felt

cum being pumped down her throat, gallons sized blasts filled her belly in a moment of

seconds.

Suddenly, Naruto pulled his cock out of, Haku's mouth. Her entire face covered in sperm with

the next shot. Naruto pushed the head back and put the tip of his cock between her lips,

shooting another thick wad filled her mouth. The succubus swallowed it and moaned as she

loved the taste. She clamped her mouth over the tip of his cock and swallowed several more

loads. She brought her hand up and wrapped it around his cock, stroking forward like she was

milking it.

"We're not done yet!" Naruto grinned evilly as he pushed Haku down to the soft grass and

kneeled down on top of her, with his cock right on top of her pussy's entrance.

"Please be gentle, Naruto-sama" Haku said to him from the underneath, her thighs were

grabbed for him to place the tip of his cock against her pussy's entrance.

"I like it wild, but I think I'm going to make an exception this time." Naruto said and entered

her, making Haku yelp in both pain and pleasure as his cock stretched her inside to the limit.

Soon enough, Naruto met her hymen and wasn't hesitating to tear through it to reach the

deepest part of her pussy. It was extremely painful for Haku, but it wasn't something a well-

trained Kunoichi like her couldn't handle.

After a while, Naruto's pace began to increase and Haku felt the pain diminishing. The

uncomfortable feeling diminished and changed to pleasure as Naruto went faster and faster.

Though, it was nowhere near the speed his clone was using to fuck his mother's clone from

behind.

"Ahhh! Oh my god!" Haku screamed as the pleasure began to ripple throughout her body.

Haku began to buck into his thrusts as Naruto started to go deeper and deeper with each

penetration before his cock finally entered her womb with a heavy and powerful thrust. This

made to squeal out "Kya! I'm cumming!" as she squirted her juice around his dick, Haku's

walls tightened around Naruto's cock causing him to groan in pleasure from the tight

constriction.

Naruto then spread her legs wider as he began to slam her pussy rapidly. His sudden change

in pace cause Haku to scream out in pleasure "AHHHHH! OH FUCK OH FUCK!

OOOOAH!" Another and another orgasmic wave of pleasure drown her body in pure bliss.

A tight, small and formerly virgin pussy was more than enough to make Naruto approached

his own orgasm faster than usual, as he came into her pussy as her walls constricted around

his cock, milking it dry. His searing hot and sticky seed completely filled her, making her

belly bloat slightly at the seer amount of sperm he pumped into her.

Finally, Naruto pulled out of her.

However, before Haku could catch her breath, Naruto flipped her around and without

warning, grabbed either side of her ass and thrust his dick forward, straight into overstuffed

pussy again, beginning to fuck her from behind.

The fun continued until nightfall, with Naruto keeping himself busy with Haku's holes until

she was left dead tired. Unfortunately enough, he did bring some soldier pills and gave her a

few of them, bringing her strength back to her so she could return before Zabuza got

suspicious about her disappearance, giving her the order to act like normal.

But one thing for sure, he was going to meet her again very soon in the future.

Line Break

"That girl must be the Yuki-Onna Grayfia was talking about." Kushina Uzumaki said as she

locked the door of their room and started stripping off her clothes, wanting to get as naked as

her son was.

"Eh?"

"The barrier my clone set up to make sure no one would enter the place when you decided to

fuck her, is for human only. Youkai can pass through it easily." Kushina pulled down her

thong, making herself completely naked before walking to Naruto and sitting on his lap,

offering both of her nipples to his mouth which he sucked eagerly.

"No wonder why her skin is so cold." Naruto mused "Should we inform Grayfia about her?"

Naruto asked curiously as he buried his face between his mother's huge tits.

"It's your choice Naruto-kun." Kushina giggled as she swayed her breasts around so they

were smashing against his cheeks. From her clone's memories she could already tell that her

son had taken a liking to his newest conquest. It was clearly shown when he didn't fuck her as

hard as he fucked his mother, or lovers at Konoha.

"Maybe I will keep her around for a few more days." Naruto said as his cock were hardened

instantly by his mother's magic. Grabbing her ass with both hands he lifted the voluptuous

woman up and then lowered her body down, his cock penetrating all the way into her pussy

and entered her womb. Unlike most girls who would have screamed and came madly around

his dick, his mother only sighed in satisfaction and gently moved her hip against his cock

"For mission purpose of course."

"Say all you want, my big dick son." Kushina cooed as she cupped his cheeks with her hands

"We both know that you just want to fuck that tight pussy and asshole again, don't you?"

"You know me so well, Kushina." Kushina giggled at the way he was addressing her and then

lowered her head down to kiss him.

End of Chapter 5

Yagami's note: Sorry for the long way, but I hope you like this chapter XD.

Another character that I really like (other than Mirajane Strauss) appeared in this chapter,

Grayfia Lucifuge as the head of Yuki-Onna Race. I found this more realistic that the role I

gave her in the contract, so I hope you will like it.

Naruto had his fun with Haku in this chapter and there were more to come in the future

chapters.

Next chapter was going to be the last chapter of Wave Arc. As Naruto would return to

Konoha at Chapter 7 to prepare for the Chunin Exam, as one of the judges (Unlike Cannon,

he is a Jounin now, isn't he?).

Hehehe! A great opportunity for Naruto to meet the hot chicks all around the Elemental

Nations.

First fighting scene to show just how powerful Naruto is in this story of mine is going to take

place in the next chapter.

That's all, I hope you WILL READ and REVIEW.

Ja ne!

Prev 1. Succubus2. Heritage3. On the way to wave Country4. MILFs at wave Country5.

How Naruto is protecting Tsunami at home6. Rogue Yuki-Onna7. Special Chapter: His first

time8. Wave Arc end9. Mistresses of Konoha10. A day at home11. MILFs at Konoha12. New

Home13. Sexy Uchiha14. Succubus Queen15. The Gifts16. Twin Succubi17. Kyuubi18.

Party and meetingsNext Post Review As Actions Share Follow/Favorite . . .

Chapter 6

Warning: Underage sex

Naruto: Lemon Chronicle of the Incubus Prince

Special Chapter

His first time

"Okay son," Kushina giggled as she locked the door behind her and put on a special seal so it

wouldn't be broken. Her hands then reached for the top of her dress and pulled it apart to free

her large tits before pushing it down to her ankle, standing naked in front of her son in his

birthday "Time to become a man and get my birthday present, me."

Today was her son's tenth birthday, a special day for any sex demons and a Hanyou Succubus

was no exception. The moment the clock ticked ten o'clock, Naruto's pants suddenly became

several size too small and for the first time in his life, he felt horny, so horny that he couldn't

think straight.

Kushina was excited when she saw the massive bulge on Naruto's pants. Ten years old and

that boy already nine inches long in length, an impressive grow for a young Incubus, which

must be because of her strong bloodline. It wasn't like she hadn't seen anything, as they

usually taken a bath with each other every weekend and she used that as an excuse to have

her hand around his hard dick, him being innocent at the time didn't know what she was

doing.

"Here, let's kaa-chan help you." Kushina said as she grabbed her son from behind and gently

caressed the outline of his cock, giggling when she heard him moan the same time his cock

throb in her hand. She then turned him around and pulled down his pants, freeing his hard

cock "Such a big dick." The former Queen giggled and stroke the underside of his cock "Cum

a lot for mommy, alright?" She kissed him on his lips before lowering herself down. All she

got from her son was a throaty growl but that was good enough.

Kushina lifted his cock up and saw his balls, smirking as she saw the size of it, bloated with

so much cum that she realized it must be very uncomfortable. The Succubus then opened her

mouth before filling her mouth to the brim with his balls. She sucked on them, using her

tongue to move the giant nuts around in her mouth. Naruto groaned out in pleasure as his new

slut sucked on his balls, alternating attention from one to the other while his cock rested on

top of her head, pre-cum coating her hairline.

Finally pulled back, Kushina stuck out her tongue and licked his cock from the base all the

way up to the tip. She didn't try to go slow, knowing just how bad a sex demon want to fuck

in their tenth birthday and it would only make it worse for her and her son if she couldn't

make him cum soon.

Gently pulled on some of the loose skin with her teeth, giving many kisses along his length,

Kushina finally took the cum drooling head into her mouth, making Naruto moan. She began

to suck on his tip, enjoying the taste of his pre-cum which was outright delcious. She

suddenly gobbled down 6 inches of his thick cock and with that, Kushina bobbed her head up

and down his giant rod, smiling around it as she saw his pleasured expression.

Naruto moaned and closed his eyes in pleasure, his mind right now couldn't function properly

and could only focus in the pleasure spread around his body from his dick.

Suddenly, Kushina withdrew her head all the way back to his purple helmet, and slammed her

head back down to the base, no gagging. Naruto hips bucked in pleasure and grabbed her

head to make her stay there for a few more seconds, which she gladly did it for him, using

her throat to massage his cock, making wet and loud slurping sounds.

Kushina once again began pumping his cock in and out of her throat. She pulled back and

slammed her face back down on her son's crotch, enjoying the grunts and moans coming

from his throat. Then suddenly with the grip on his mother's hair Naruto took hold of both

sides of Kushina's head by her hair, and began brutally face fucking her.

She sighed happily when her son wasn't trying to be gentle about it.

She realized he was at his end when he began to pick up his pace. His rapid face fucking of

him and the constant twitches soon led to his first ever massive orgasm. Grabbing hold of his

mother's head, Naruto shot his load inside his mother's waiting mouth, the amount of sperm

rushing in at once causing Kushina's cheeks to bulge as they tried to contain the large volume

of semen. But as a pro she skillfully swallowed his massive load until his climax end

"Delicious." Kushina said while licking her lips sexually. She then removed his shirt and

pulled him toward the bed by his cock, smirking when he reached his hand out to grab her ass

"There there." Kushina laid on the bed and spread her legs wide, pulling him toward her and

aimed the dick at her pussy "Your mother is your tonight, Naruto. You'll get to pound that ass

later, don't worry" she didn't know if he could hear her, but she said that anyway "Since it's

your first time, I will show you how to do it." Her tail shot out from her back and wrapped

around Naruto's hip, pulling him to her and plunging his dick in all at once. The feeling of the

first pussy was too much for him to handle and Naruto released his second load of the night

into his mother's womb the very moment it was all in. "Ara! You're already cumming?"

Kushina exclaimed in both pleasure and surprise as she felt son cum inside her, but Naruto

was by then too lost in his own pleasure to pay her any mind "Oh, I love creampie?" Kushina

moaned and leaned back as Naruto started pounding into his mother with wild abandon, with

the help of her tail as well.

He then came again just a few minutes later his load just as much and thick as the last

But again he didn't stop.

Kushina was a drooling mess at this point, she had experienced all forms of sexual

stimulation in the past being the Queen of a sex crazed race. But it was nothing compare to

this as there was a stamina freak quick-shot that released thick and massive loads each time

on top of her, fucking her pussy with reckless abandon, showing complete dominate in this

fucking session. Her womb had expanded to its maximum and for the first time ever, actually

couldn't take in more cum causing it to leak out around the edges of the dick pounding into

her.

She underestimated her own kin and now she would have to pay for it.

More than an hour later it had actually come to the point where both sex demons were in a

state of constant orgasm, mind clouded of anything but their pleasure, Naruto's dick was

releasing a what seemed to be a never ending stream of cum, leaking out of his mother's

pussy whole he was still thrusting his cock in and out of her sex, already got the basic idea of

what to do from this point

As the sun rose from the horizon, Naruto finally came back to his sense and groaned out

when he felt an unimagined amount of pleasure coming from his cock every time thrust his

hip. Looking down, his eyes widened when he found his mother, completely naked with

something sticky covered her entire body, her ass slapped against his hip every time he

plunged it forward and looked like his cock was in her asshole.

"Kaa-chan?" Naruto asked as he looked at her face, which was very weird in his opinion. She

seemed daze, somehow with her eyes rolled into the back of her head and her tongue lolled

out of her mouth "Oh man, this is too good." Naruto moaned with a while grin before

continuing thrusting his hip, ignoring his mother's moans as he just wanted to keep doing this

forever.

End of Special Chapter

Yagami's note: My deepest apology for the note at the latest chapter, it seems I have make

many readers angry because of my decision. So I had deleted it and replaced with this one

special chapter about Naruto's first time. Chapter 6 is nearly done and is going to be updated

soon.

But try to be an author and you will understand. I couldn't help but see that nearly all readers

who criticized me in the latest note are not an author and simply a reader. You don't know the

feeling of writing this story but have your mind bother by the different ideas, as an part time

author who do this as an hobby and ask for nothing in return other than the love of his fans,

it's really troublesome to keep writing a story that you have no inspiration, as your mind is

being bothered by the new ideas. If I didn't write those ideas out and make it into a story, then

I wouldn't be able to continue this one because my man is so bothered with the ideas of that

new story.

You want this one to discontinued forever?

Be an author and you'll understand the feeling of an author.

I will try my best to finish all of my stories, but to do that I need time.

Please be patient. Some manga like Attack on Titan or To-love ru took months to update the

new chapter, and did you throw flame at the authors for doing something like that?

That's all I want to say, want or no longer want to follow my stories, it's your choice.

But I know that there is always true Yagami's fans out there, supporting me along the way no

matter what path I take.

READ and REVIEW

Ja ne!

P/S: Remember to check out the Contract: The Pure Everyone

Prev 1. Succubus2. Heritage3. On the way to wave Country4. MILFs at wave Country5.

How Naruto is protecting Tsunami at home6. Rogue Yuki-Onna7. Special Chapter: His first

time8. Wave Arc end9. Mistresses of Konoha10. A day at home11. MILFs at Konoha12. New

Home13. Sexy Uchiha14. Succubus Queen15. The Gifts16. Twin Succubi17. Kyuubi18.

Party and meetingsNext Post Review As Actions Share Follow/Favorite . . .

Chapter 7

Naruto: Lemon Chronicle of the Incubus Prince

Chapter 6

Wave Arc end

"OH YES! FUCK ME! HARDER! DEEPER! PLEASE!" The Succubus moaned as she was

pounded from behind. Sweat and juices covered her body as she was rocked by each thrust.

Her large breasts swaying as her son standing behind her slammed his hips into the full

cheeks of her large ass.

It was seven in the morning and Naruto was still enjoying the benefits of being a strong and

powerful Incubus, with his most favorite lover aside from his mother, the succubus princess

Mirajane, who had returned last night from a visit to her mother and taken the first

opportunity she got to throw herself onto Naruto and proceed to jump him senseless. Because

of her appearance, plus Naruto had been dying to get another chance to fuck one of the finest

women in the world again, Kushina didn't get much action with her son last night and already

left to protect Tazuna at five in the morning, leaving Naruto and Mira alone to rape the hell

out of each other.

"Aren't you a lot louder than usual today Mira?" The boy grinned as he took hold of her long

flowing silky white hair now matted and sticky with sweat and dried cum. "I'm going to fuck

you till you can't walk tomorrow. I'm going to fuck you until your cunt is nothing but a

gaping hole filled to the brim with my cum. Do you like the sound of that Mira?" Even

though Naruto knew something like those were actually almost impossible to do to a Youkai,

let alone one born for sex, dirty talking had always been a turn on for this slutty princess and

Naruto knew just the way to flip her switch on.

"OH FUCK! YESSSS! GIVE IT TO ME! I'M YOUR SLUTTY CUMDUMP! POUND MY

SLUTTY PUSSY!" She gasped. Her mind blank except for the feeling of his insanely large

cock stretching her well fucked hole. She was lost in pleasure and lust. All that mattered was

him fucking her brains out until he filled her up and covered her body in his white, sticky

sperm.

Though, the thought of getting knocked up by this young man sounded tempting enough.

"I'm going to fuck your body until all you can think about is cock. I'm going to make you a

cock-hungry whore who only desires to be filled by cock." Naruto placed his hands on her

full womanly hips as he increased his pace slamming his cock into her stuffed pussy. The

sounds of her full ass slapping against his hips filled the room. Mira moaned lewdly as her

eyes rolled up to the back of her head from absolute pleasure.

The young boy then grew tired of this position and slowly pulled out his cock. Inch by inch

he withdrew until the full thirteen inches and a half of hard meat lay on the crack of Mira's

luscious ass. All of the cum he had pumped into her since the morning began pouring out,

dribbling down her thighs as it pooled between her legs. She whimpered in disappointment

and started rolling her ass against his crotch, trying to get him into filling her up again.

Naruto snickered, even after fucking her brains out since the early morning and barely gave

them any sleep, she still wasn't fully satisfied. He gazed at her large meaty ass lustily and

gave it a hard slap causing the flesh to jiggle and redden, making Mira moan out lewdly at

the tingling sensation of her ass.

As expected from a young, full of energy and horny succubus. At least his mother was more

control to her urge.

She looked behind again, gazing longingly at him. "Please Naruto-sama. Fuck me more. I

need more of your cock. Fill me up with more of your cum. Please!"

"What a greedy succubus." He grinned as Mira suddenly found herself lying on her back, legs

spread eagle. She sighed happily as Naruto lined up the head of his cock with her gaping

pussy and groaned out loudly as he pushed it in, stretching her walls to the point where it was

almost painful.

She was filled again.

Naruto began thrusting all nearly a foot and two inches into the voluptuous woman beneath

him with a fast and steady pace. She wrapped her legs round his waist and her arms around

his neck pulling him close, mashing her amazing large breasts against his chest. He began

pounding into her and saw her eyes roll back and mouth hang open as she cried out in lust

and pleasure

"Ah! Ah! Ah! Ah! Yessssss! Harder! Harder! Fuck meeeeee!"

He didn't disappoint as he began to ram his cock faster into her sloppy pussy, grinning as she

lost herself to the pleasure of being fucked silly. He enjoyed the image of the gorgeous

woman beneath him. Long, curly white hair splayed out on the bed, eyes rolled up into her

head, flushed cheeks, mouth gaping open with her tongue lolling helplessly, her large breasts

heaving obscenely at every thrust.

"Tell me. Who do you belong to slut? Whose cock do you belong to?" He grabbed her ankles

and spread her legs, giving him more room to actually jump on her lower body and fuck his

cock harder and faster into her.

"AH! AH! AH! OH MY GOD! I BELONG TO YOU NARUTO-SAMA! ONLY YOU! THIS

FILTHY PUSSY BELONGS TO YOU! I AM YOUR PERSONAL CUMDUMP!" Mira

screamed as her mind overloaded with pleasure.

Naruto grinned. "Now that is something I love to hear. Here is your reward. Take all my

cum!"

"YES! YES! FILL ME UP! GIVE ME YOUR CUM! OH YES! FILL UP YOUR SLUTTY

PET WITH YOUR FUCKING CUM!"

Naruto groaned as he felt himself explode into her, shooting thick ropes of sperm into her

well used pussy. Mira could feel it filling her up to the brim. The sensation of warm cum

flooding her insides brought the white-head to orgasm as well, her entire body shaking as her

brain overloaded with pleasure.

"So much~" She moaned as her whole body twitched in ecstasy, her abdomen slightly

distended from the volume of semen pumped into her well fucked body.

Surely the boys of her harem got nothing like Naruto.

Naruto was not done cumming yet. He withdrew his cock from her swollen pussy with a pop.

Mira groaned as she felt a river of cum flow out of her gaping hole. She lay in a puddle of

cum and her own lewd juices, as Naruto continued to spray semen over the gorgeous white-

headed Succubus. He absolutely covered her in his thick, white semen. Her hair, her face, her

heaving breasts, her firm abdomen.

She slowly got back onto her knees, eyes wide, breathing heavily as she inhaled the strong

musky scent of the enormous amount of cum still pouring down her face from his cock,

almost orgasmed again just from that. Naruto grabbed her face, then thrust the head of his

cock into her mouth, unloading his sperm into her mouth until it overflowed, dripping down

her chin and into the valley of her amazing cleavage.

"So thick." She cooed lustfully after Naruto had pulled his cock out.

But Mira didn't let his pole leave her for long as she pushed her head forward, opened her

mouth and wrapped her luscious red lips around the head, sucking and slurping on it like an

oversized lollipop. She rolled her tongue around, savoring the taste before slowly bobbing

her head up and down, each time trying to get more of Naruto's cock down into her throat.

She breathed in his musky scent, moaning around his cock as her mind once again

overloaded by it.

Then he grabbed the back of Mira's head, slowly forcing his cock down her tight throat. Her

eyes widened for a seconds but relaxed her throat so he could push more or his meat pole

down her gut, tears running down her beautiful face. Soon the succubus' face was buried in

his crotch, all nearly fourteen inches buried down her throat. Her slender neck bulged out at

the monstrous intrusion.

He stayed like that for several seconds before beginning to withdraw his cock, coated and

dripping with her saliva out until only the large bulbous head was in her mouth. Mira gasped,

gulping for air before Naruto began forcing his cock down again, this time he did it faster and

stronger.

He smirked as he slowly began to pump his hips against her face, grabbing fistfuls of her

white hair. Mira was helpless as her throat was fucked, stretched out like never before. Her

eyes began to roll back from the lack of air as well as from the overpowering sensations of

being brutally face-fucked.

Naruto rapidly increased his pace, fucking the woman's face without mercy as he felt his balls

tighten. "Alright slut. Get ready to take all my cum!"

All Mira could do was moan in reply as she focused on taking his length down her battered

throat. Her eyes widened as she felt his cock expand before releasing yet another torrent of

semen.

After a few minutes of cumming just like that, and Mira skillfully gulped them all down and

didn't spill a drop, Naruto withdrew his cock from her throat and wiped it clean from her

saliva with her cheeks, making Mira coo excitedly at the lewd act.

"Ah~! That's why I love early morning the most." Naruto sighed in satisfaction as he dropped

himself down his bed, bringing Mira down beside him as well. The succubus put her cheek

on her palm and supported her head with her right arm, smiling at Naruto as she moved her

body closer to his and, making her large breasts lay on his muscular chest.

"Keep it like that and I'm sure that you will make an amazing Incubus soon, Naruto-sama"

Mira smiled as she ran her index finger up his chest and along his jaw.

"Well, I will make sure to try my hardest then." Naruto chuckled before turning to look at

Mira "How's your mother doing? If you don't mind me asking of course." If he remembered

correctly, her mother's name was Eva, who had become his mother's successor after Kushina

decided to retire from her position. In term of status and power, Mira's mother was a class

higher than his mother, because she was originally the first Succubi.

From the teaching he learned from Kushina recently, Eva was the first woman created by

God, becoming the first sex demon after succumbing to the serpent's temptation via the

suggestion that to eat the forbidden fruit from the tree of the knowledge of good and evil

would improve on the way God had made her, and that she would not die.

"She is doing fine, you know for a leader of a wild race like us, she is doing a pretty good job

in keeping her underlings in line." Mira smiled and Naruto laughed at that "Also, she is very

eager to meet you, Naruto-sama."

"I see..." Naruto grinned "Tell her that I also can't wait to meet her."

"Normally, I won't share my lover to her... but I think I will make an exception this time."

Mira moved her head closer and pressed her lips against his cheek "Because it's not like I

could stop you from making her body into your plaything, could I?"

"You know me so well." Naruto laughed while Mira giggled, both of them getting excited at

the idea "Well, enough is enough, get dress Mira, time to move out."

"Eh?" The succubus pouted as Naruto shot up to his feet and began gathering his clothes,

which scattered all over the room "Can we just spend all day at home fucking?" she whined

playfully

"It's impossible, sorry Mira." Naruto said as he put on his black pant "As much as I love sex,

duty of a Shinobi come first. I can't let Kushina do all the work for me out there."

"Eh~, but aren't your mother strong?" Mira asked "I mean, she's known for her power as a

powerful Succubus, and I bet that she's become very strong as a Kunoichi as well."

"Yes, but she has a bunch of brats with her and a professional assassin after our client."

Naruto shook his head "If he strikes, she would have to fight and protect them at the same

time, it's hard to do that even if you're the strongest Shinobi."

"That's why I..." but Naruto's speech was cut off by a woman's scream, Tsunami's scream

"See?" He asked before quickly disappeared behind the door. Mira gathered her clothes and

quickly flew after him as well.

Tsunami was busy doing housework while her son Inari was playing outside; Kushina and the

rest of Team 7 were protecting Tazuna at the construction site, so he could finish the bridge

without worrying about Gato and his minions, as it's nearly completed. Naruto, however, was

still in his room and if it wasn't because of her daily chores, she would love to head upstairs

and asked him to fuck her as hard as he could.

It was peaceful, until the door was kicked open by two ruthless mercenaries, one of them

holding Inari in his arm, barged in and pulled out their swords and place them near Inari's

neck, taking him hostage.

"Inari" Tsunami screamed in horror while gasping with shock at the sight of her son being

taken hostage.

"Kaa-san, help me" cried Inari with tears in his eyes

"Alright lady, listen up" said the first mercenary as he placed his blade near Inari's neck

"Come with us and the kid will live" The black haired beauty widened her eyes for a second

in fear before dropping her head

"Alright, just don't hurt him, please" she cried with worry.

"Good to hear" said the mercenary as he removed the sword from Inari's neck and dropped

him before kicking the young child away, sending him crashing into a wall. Tsunami widens

her eyes with anger and turns her head at them.

"You said you won't hurt him!" Cried Tsunami with anger as she tried to run to her son, only

to be held back by one of the thug "Let go of me!"

"Oh, a feisty one, aren't you?" said the secondary as he held onto her cheeks and got spat on

by Tsunami, causing him to get pissed and raised his hand to slap her, only to be stopped by

Naruto who appeared behind him and grabbed his wrist. Before the mercenaries could notice

him, Naruto brought his free arm back and thrust his elbow into the side of the thug's head,

cracking his skull and knocking his teeth out, sending him flying out of the house.

He then turned to the second thug, however, before Naruto could do anything the larger man

suddenly stopped dead on his track, with his eyes widened in horror. Not a second later, a

hand suddenly shot out of his chest, holding his still beating heart and soaked with blood.

Tsunami and Inari widened their eyes in horror at such scene and fainted at where they were

standing.

"Is that really necessary?" Naruto asked, looking at Mira who yanked her hand out of the

man's back and dropped him, throwing his heart away like it was something really disgusting.

"There is two thing sex demons like, Naruto-sama." The white haired succubus said "It was

the sperm of their lover, and the blood of their enemies. The later also apply for every

demons." She smirked darkly and wiped her arm clean with a towel "Don't underestimate me

simply because I'm slutty. I'm still a high-class demoness, you know."

"No worry my dear." Naruto chuckled before heading out of the house "Now..." The thug,

with a bloody face, who was looking at them in horror, backed away in fear when he saw

Naruto approaching, with the demon that killed his partner floating behind him. When Naruto

was close enough, he picked the man up by his collar and glared into his eyes "Alright pal,

start speaking or that pretty face is the last thing you will see." Naruto pointed at Mira, who

was giving him a sickly sweet smile.

"Alright alright! Please don't kill me, I will tell you anything!" he cried in panic, having seen

the way Mira killed his partner

"Good, talk!"

"The boss has decided that Zabuza too expensive to pay and expected him to die in the ninja's

hands. Also he has all his men to deal with the bridge builder when Zabuza meets his demise.

It's everything I know, I sweat!"

"Tch..." Naruto growled before knocking the third out cold. He then turned around to look at

Mira "We need to get to the bridge, now."

"But... isn't Kushina-sama there?" Mira asked in curiosity.

"Yes, but she can't protect those three Gennin and fight at the same time." Naruto shook his

head and put his hand on Mira's shoulder, flashing the both of them away and to the bridge,

where his mother was at.

Line Break

"We meet again, Zabuza-san" grinned Kushina as she clashed her nodachi with Zabuza much

bigger broadsword, having no problem holding him back with her abnormal strength and

skills. Haku had already gone to take care of her Gennin Team, but she wasn't too worry

about them because with her son at her master, she wouldn't do anything to harm them...

much anyway.

"Yes we are, Akai Chishio no Habanero." Zabuza growled and addressed the swordswoman

with her codename rather than her real name. His silent killing technique was flawless, but

against a Kunoichi like Kushina, it was particularly useless. Their previous showdown had

already proved that "Your son isn't here?"

"What? Want him to kick your ass again?" Kushina smirked as she pushed Zabuza back with

a hard strike "Don't worry Zabuza-san, he's probably on the way here." But Kushina was

doubting her words, because last time she checked, Naruto was still riding the princess of

succubae like he was in heat, loosing himself to the pleasure and completely unaware of her

presence.

"Tch, only want to settle my score with the second Yellow Flash."

"Too bad for you Zabuza-san, you'll have to stick with me for the time being." Her eyes

hardened and with a hard kick, she sent Zabuza flying even though he had already brought

his sword up to block her foot. But Kushina widened her eyes when Zabuza suddenly turned

into water and fell down to the ground "A water clone?"

"You're finished." The mist demon appeared behind her with his sword brought back, ready

to take Kushina's life.

However, right at the moment Zabuza slashed his sword, Naruto appeared beside his mother

in a yellow flash and grabbed her around the waist before disappearing again before

Kubikiribocho could cut them down. In a blink of an eye, Zabuza found himself surrounded

by naked and beautiful women, who then tore his clothes apart and started doing vulgar

things to him. He was so shocked, that he dropped his sword and dropped all will of fighting

and let himself succumb to the lust.

"Eh? Giving up so soon? This is only an A-class illusion, you know?" Mira groaned in

disappointment. Behind her was Naruto and Kushina, still holding onto each other with

smiles on their faces.

"Well well, aren't you my Knight in shining armor?" Kushina asked before kissing her son

passionately, the miss around them was thick enough to cover them "I'm so going to reward

you when we're back, Naruto."

"Ehehe, I cannot wait." Naruto chuckled as he grabbed both of her supple ass cheeks in his

hands.

"Um, if you don't mind me..." Mira suddenly stepped in and pointed her hand to the right side

of the bridge "But your students are getting themselves killed over there."

"Oh, eh he, sorry." Naruto released his mother before grinning at her "Call that silver haired

chick Kaa-chan, I will get Haku." After telling that to her, Naruto shot forward and

disappeared into the mist.

"Ara?" Kushina giggled when she heard lustful moaning and cries of pleasure of Haku from

inside the thick mist. Three clones of her son then appeared, carrying Sasuke, Sakura, Tazuna

and Kiba with Akamaru on their back, all five of them were unconscious and appeared to be

knocked out by her son. They put the bridge builder and Team Seven down to the ground

before disappearing "What a dutiful son!" She commended before creating a magic circle to

call Grayfia.

Line Break

"Will I meet her again, Grayfia?" Naruto asked the white haired beauty, Grayfia Lucifuge

while looking at Haku "I know that she has been causing troubles..."

"Don't worry Naruto-sama." Grayfia shook her head with a small smile "I will return her to

you as soon as she can fully control her power. She is still young and only an innocent Yuki-

Onna, after all."

"Thank you, Grayfia." Naruto nodded his head with a smile before looking at Haku "Be a

good girl and listen to her order, alright?"

"Yes, Naruto-sama." Haku smiled with a nod of her head "I will return to you, I promise."

"You better will." Naruto grinned and kissed her "Take care."

"You too, Naruto-sama." And with that, the two Yuki-Onna disappeared. Naruto couldn't help

but take a deep breath, to take in the last of Grayfia's amazing scent before turning around to

walk to his mother, who was trying to wake her students up.

Unfortunately for Zabuza Momochi, he had lost his sanity to the illusion Mira cast on him,

and was currently lying on the ground with his hands tied together behind his back, a seal his

mother put on him to prevent himself from breaking out or using his chakra, muttering

something about too much sex and didn't want to experience sex ever again in his time.

A cold blood killer but he was, after all, a man.

Then suddenly, before he could say anything to his mother, Gato and his armies suddenly

appeared, grinning and smirking arrogantly with various kind of melee weapons in their

hands.

"Well, well, looks like Zabuza has failed again." Smirked Gato "It doesn't matter now. I was

expecting you to get killed by them anyway."

Naruto and Kushina didn't say anything, only looked at each other and nodded their head,

sharing the same thought before pulling their respective weapons out and charged at Gato and

his mercenaries, who at first, thought a busty chick and a young man couldn't do anything

much to them.

Until Gato was behead by Kushina, and some of the men went crazy because of Mira's

illusion.

What a great way to end the mission, Naruto couldn't help but muse.

mistress of leaf

Chapter 7

The Mistresses of Konoha

It'd been three days since the mission at Wave Country ended, and Naruto had never felt so

much alive in his life.

"Honey, while I'm happy that you get yourself a decent girlfriend," Kushina put her hand on

her hip and glared playfully at her son, who was having his way with her successor's

daughter's mouth and throat, straddling her neck and moved his hip wildly while grinning and

drooling like a maniac. It was a beautiful sunny day and Mira decided to take a sunbath, until

Naruto decided to give her an early lunch, deciding that her naked body that was lying on the

longue chair was too erotic to be left unoccupied by his cock "but can you please keep your

voice down? Our garden isn't soundproofed like the rest of our house, you know?" she

pointed out, gaining his attention.

"Good morning, kaa-chan." Naruto greeted her cheerfully, getting turned on several times by

her nude body, only hiding behind a tiny pink apron that literally let everything to the eye to

see "How about you come over here and keep my mouth busy with your mouth and your

tits?" he grinned and kept his body still, allowing Mira to work on his cock all by herself and

spread his arms invitingly at his mother, who made a soft giggle before removing the apron

from her body and walked toward him.

"How can I not say no to you, dear?" Kushina asked as she tongue kissed him with as much

love as she could before pushing her tits together and offering it to her son, allowing him to

feast on her nipples like he was a hungry little babe.

"Now you will be the one who make noise, kaa-chan." Naruto said while he was licking

around her areolas, his hands kneading her breasts roughly, getting even more excited with

how they felt in his palms. Just like how he said, the red haired succubus started moaning and

allowed herself to thoroughly enjoy the pleasure her son was giving her.

With a grunt, Naruto shot what could be considered his biggest load yet directly down Mira's

stomach, with his cock burying as far down her throat as possible. His orgasm last for fifteen

minutes and after he was done cumming the blond incubus allowed Mira to feast on the last

of his orgasm before pulling out, standing up and brought his mother with him into the house.

"Mira, can you take care of the foods for me?" Kushina asked from Naruto's shoulder as she

wrapped her limbs around his muscular body, letting him carry her into the house "I don't

think this big boy is going to let me go until he's thoroughly satisfied."

"It'll be my pleasure, Kushina-sama." The white haired succubus giggled and followed them

into the house, but head to the kitchen unlike Naruto who carried his mother into the dining

room and bended her against the dining table, grabbing her wrists and pulled her back before

spearing every single inch his big cock into her super tight ass, having his mother ass pressed

tightly against him, his cock fully buried up the tight hole and his balls pressed firmly to

Kushina soaked pussy.

"Oh Kami... my ass." Kushina moaned with drool running down the corner of her mouth

"You're so going to tear me apart, dear. You're so, deep... inside my butt..." Kushina groaned

with an Ahegao smile.

"Hehe, sorry kaa-chan, I'm in the mood for anal, and your ass is so tight around my dick."

Naruto grinned and increased his pounding speed, hands moving to her G-cup breasts, using

them at handhold while he kept fucking her ass as hard as he could, his large balls hit her

cunt with every thrust, and Kushina started to enjoy it very much, using her ass to rub against

his pelvis.

"Oh, fuck! Fuck! You're turning my inside out honey! Fuck! Fuck me harder." Kushina yelled

in pleasure, as the dirty taking got Naruto more turned on "Did your cock grow bigger?

Because I swear it's a lot bigger than last night." she couldn't stop herself from giggling at the

thought of her son growing up to be a wonderful Incubus.

Naruto rammed his cock into Kushina harder and harder, giving both of them mind-blowing

orgasms after mind-blowing orgasms, as he contained fucking her ass and painted her inside

white with his sperm, cumming with each thrust. Her ass tightened even more, squeezing

around his sensitive dick, and forced him to reach another mind-shattering orgasm, as was

Kushina, pumping even more cum into his mother's anus tube.

"I'm cumming! I'm cumming, Kaa-chan!" Naruto growled, as he thrust harder "Oh, fuck!"

Kushina's eyes rolled back and her tongue hanged out, feeling her own belly stretch out to

contain her son's cum. Like always, Naruto came for minutes and slowly pulled himself out

of his mother's ass when he was done. Without anything to plug it up, his cum flooded out

and dropped down to the floor in large glob of white goo.

"We're not done yet, Kaa-chan." Naruto grinned, as soon as her asshole was closed, he

speared his dick into her pussy and lifted her up until her back was pressed firmly against his

chest. His arms crossed on her stomach and hands groped her large breasts, pinching her

nipples and started thrusting into her again, reaching the deepest part of her pussy and

threatening to punch into her cunt.

"Shit, Naruto-kun!" Kushina moaned with her teeth gritted to keep herself from falling over,

as her legs felt weak because of the pleasure "Stop acting like I'm your fuck toy." She said,

rubbing the obscene bulge on her stomach, caused by the massive dick that was penetrating

her.

"But you're, aren't you?" Naruto asked, whispering into her ear, making Kushina coo

excitedly, as he fucked her in a standing position "Walking around the house with this lewd

body of yours. I'm really surprise that I can hold myself back from fucking you all day,

without stopping." He used one hand to turn her head around and forced her tongue out of her

mouth before sucking it into his mouth, fucking her pussy harder and faster, to the point he

was lifting her up from the ground every time he thrust forward and up.

He fucked her good and hard, in every position he could think about. Soon, lunch was

arranged on the table, but Naruto was the only one who got to enjoy it, because as soon as

she finished cooking his meals, Mira got under the table with Kushina and the two of them

processed to suck their lunch out of his cock, forcing him to cum three massive orgasm

before finishing his own lunch.

"You two bitches cannot think of anything than my cock, can you?" Naruto asked, holding

Kushina and Mira by their chins as they kneeled on the ground before him, their tongues

hanging out of their mouths while they were looking at him with heart-shape pupils, smiling

stupidly at their cheeks pressed against his cock. If he didn't know any better, it was as if they

were drunk from drinking so much of his sperm "Good, because I do not intent to let neither

of us leave until my balls is dried." Instead of letting them jump him, Naruto jumped on them

and fucked them right on the middle of the hallway, and all the way to his room at the second

floor, leaving a lot of puddles of cum on the floor that would definitely take forever to clean.

Line Break

It was already past midnight and Naruto was heading into a night club at the entertainment

district of the village. Naruto wasn't someone who was unfamiliar with night clubs, because

other than his mother and Mira, he met most of the women in his life there, or usually took

them to places like that for dates.

The place was dark, noisy with loud and strong music and it was crowded. There were people

everywhere dancing, drinking, making out or even fucking each other in the corners while the

lights flashed and the music blared, driving them even more excited at whatever they were

doing. As he walked through the club he noticed many girls turned to look at him, and not

that he could blame them because his pheromone was rather strong, even for an Incubus and

it was helping him attract all the attention.

By imagining himself fucking his mother, Naruto willed his cock to get hard, making a very

noticeable bulge on his pants, allowing the female to know that he wasn't there for fun, he

was there for real business. Many women started touching themselves as he walked pass

them, getting affected greatly by his manly charm as well as the strong pheromone he was

emitting.

And he didn't have to wait long, because on the dance floor, a pretty woman wearing a daring

dress suddenly stepped forward and wrapped her arms around his neck.

"Hey there handsome." She said through the music "Looking for some fun?" she asked,

pressing her rather impressive assets on his chest as he stepped even closer to him.

"Well, can't say I'm..." but before he could say anything, a hand shot out from the crowd and

pushed the woman away much to her shock and grabbed by Naruto by his collar. There, he

was pulled to the side and widened his eyes when he saw who it was.

"Fancy seeing you here, Naruto." It was Anko Mitarashi, wearing a backless tight purple

dress with the straps tied together at the back of her neck, which seemed to be made out of a

light almost see-through material, the neck of it dropped down so low down her navel that a

large amount of the inner parts of her impressive DD-cup breasts were exposed. The dress

extended down to just below her ass, showing the outline of her supple ass cheeks. She also

had her hair down instead of the usual pineapple pony tails and light make-ups. From

experience he could tell that she wore no undergarment "What a good boy like you doing in a

place like this?"

Naruto returned with his own smirk "And what a good place like you doing in a girl like this,

Anko?" he knew her when the two of them were still in the academy, but he graduated too

soon to actually get to know her and her friends, who was now hailed at the Four Mistresses

of Konoha, known for their beauty and dangerousness, powers that they were specialize in.

Anko Mitarashi, Hana Inuzuka and Kurenai Yuhi was his mother's first Gennin Team, while

Yugao Uzuki was her Kenjutsu disciple. If Anko was there, then there was a high-chance that

her friends were here at well.

"How charming? Want to have a dance with me?" Deciding that she should be a little more

daring and straight forward, the Tokubetsu Jounin, known for her outgoing personality,

started swaying her body around against him and before turning around and twirling her hip

against his, rubbing her ass against the massive bulge on his pants "Go on, don't be shy, we're

man and woman here." Anko pressed her back against his chest and wrapped her arms around

his hip, continuing to sway her body around and paying extra attention to what could be the

biggest dick she had ever encountered and had the chance to rub her ass against.

Naruto took his chance and placed his hand on Anko's hip, grunting slightly as his cock get

harder and threaten to tear his pants apart.

Anko, heard his grunt, couldn't help but smirked proudly and turned her head around to look

at him "Oh my, don't tell me you want to fuck... " but Anko felt her mind going blank the

moment she looked into his eyes, which was emitting a faint cerulean blue light. A few

seconds later, Naruto's eyes stopped glowing and Anko started dancing again, but that time,

her mouth was opened and allowed Naruto to invade it with his tongue, kissing her

passionately while his hands moved from her hips to her large breasts, getting underneath her

dress so he could directly feel them, forcing her to moan into his mouth.

They kept it like that for several minutes, with the both of them moved their body to the

music, her body rubbed against his body, his hands playing with her breasts while furiously

making out with each other. Soon, Anko removed one hand from his head and travelled down

to his cock, stroking it through his pants.

"You know," Anko said as she pulled back from his lips "It's rather uncomfortable to have

something like this hold back by your pants. How about you take it out Naruto?" Anko asked

with a seductive tone. However, she didn't bother to wait for his permission and started

unzipping his pants.

"I will need a place to hide it," Naruto chuckled as his cock was freed from its binding and

stroked directly by Anko's soft hand. "and I believe I just found hat place." Naruto said, his

hand moved down to rub her supple ass cheek.

"Ara..." Anko giggled and moved both hand down to spread her ass cheek, allowing him to

place the tip of his cock against her rosebud "please do it before anyone see the monster."

Encouraged by her slutty allowance, Naruto impaled his cock into her ass to the hilt and

caused Anko to let out a scream, but Naruto immediately covered her mouth before any

sounds were made.

"You're tight, Anko-chan." Naruto whispered into her ear while still covering her mouth with

his hand, his cock residing inside her tight anus "We won't want anyone to notice us, will

we?" the blond incubus chuckled as she nodded her head and seemed to tighten even more

around him "Now, take me to your friends and let's see if I can find myself a fivesome

tonight."

"Y-yes." Anko's body shuddered with pleasure and started leading Naruto to her friends, with

his cock still stayed firm inside her ass, him mimicking every single move she made to make

sure that no one would notice and appearing to be a man who was walking very close to his

girlfriend into the bar area. Though, her ass was so tight that Naruto thought he was being

pulled with her, not following her.

Soon, Naruto and Anko arrived at the private section and stopped at one of the VIP rooms.

Anko knocked on the door a few times before saying.

"It's me." And she turned the doorknob and walked in, with Naruto followed behind.

"Jackpot" Naruto grinned and felt extremely excited at what he saw.

Kurenai Yuhi, Hana Inuzuka and Yugao Suzuki... like he thought, all three of them were there

with Anko, dressed in extremely sexy dresses that showed off their feminine sides for a night

at a nightclub. Even though they were nowhere as near as beautiful as the princess, or even

his mother, they could be four of the most beautiful human women he had ever met, with

bodies that could make men drool in lust.

"Hey girls..." Anko said cheerily before crying out in pleasure when Naruto hooked his hands

at the underside of her thighs and lifted her up to bounce her on his cock, shocking her

friends to the core.

However, just how he did it with Anko in order to make things easier, Naruto decided to use

his charm magic on them and implanted his orders into their minds, forcing them to believe

that he was their sex partner who they really wanted to please for quite some time, both

mentally and physically and had absolutely no problem in sharing him with each other, or any

women out there for future purpose.

After he was done casting his magic, Naruto removed Anko from his cock and threw himself

down the longue between Hana and Yugao, wrapping his arms around their shoulders and

pulled the close to him. The two beautiful women giggled at his action, and leaned their body

against him, pushing their breasts against his side with their hands found his hard cock.

"You girls come here without inviting me." He said with a sly grin "I'm hurt, you know."

"Aw, don't be like that Naruto-kun." Hana giggled and turned his face to her "Here, let me

make it up to you." She kissed him, and Naruto happily returned it.

"So, what are you four ladies doing here again?"

"Kurenai-chan found her boyfriend cheating on her behind her back." Anko said as she sat

down next to Anko, who growled slightly and grabbed a drink for herself before gulping the

entire cup down at once. Naruto finally realized that Kurenai appeared to be quite drunk,

unlike her friends.

"Asshole." The Genjutsu mistress growled and leaned back and glued her eyes to Naruto's

cock.

"There's not something you should be so emotional about Kurenai." Naruto spoke up "That

asshole will regret cheating on you. Also, you still have me, haven't you?" He asked and

Kurenai nodded her head with a smile "Come here." He signaled her to come over, and like

how she had been 'programmed', she jumped over the table and straddled him with his cock

between them, wrapping her arms around his neck and kissed his hard "The other..." it was

hard for him to say when Kurenai kept sucking on his lips like that "...strip, I want all of you

to be naked and ready for them." When he was done giving order, Naruto created three clones

of himself and let them take care of the other three while he turned back to make out with

Kurenai, hiking her dress up to her waist and grabbed her ass cheeks and began roughly

fondle it, making her moan approvingly into their make out session, which escalated to

swapping saliva with their tongues.

As the two of them kissed, Naruto allowed Kurenai to remove his shirt, leaving him

completely naked before her. Not to be left outdone by the sexy black haired woman, Naruto

pulled down the zipper of her dress behind her back, hurriedly removing it from her body

before going back to kiss her again, her dress no longer in the way. His hands roamed around

her back, removing her lacy bra along the way. He broke the kiss, and allowed Kurenai to

slide down his body and kneeled between his legs, taking a hold of his massive cock around

the base.

Naruto groaned as Kurenai's soft hand and tongue slid and down his cock. She was no sex

demon, but knew what she was doing and clearly knew how to make him feel good. Slowly,

Kurenai moved her lips closer to the head of his dick, blowing a soft kiss before taking it in

her mouth, wrapping her lips around it, her mouth being stretched like never before. She

licked around the head that was residing inside of her mouth, before taking more and more

until he hit the back of her throat. Kurenai then pulled back and slowly moved her head up

and down the hard shaft.

"Shit... that feel good." Groaned Naruto, throwing his head back to enjoy Kurenai's blowjob.

After fucking women that was born to fuck so much, he had completely forgotten what it felt

like to have sex with normal women like Kurenai, who was taking it slow instead of being a

cock hungry slut like Mira or his mother "Enjoy yourself there boys?" as Kurenai blew him,

Naruto turned to ask his clones, who were having their ways with the other three.

"God! This is the best boss."

Like her best friend, Anko was sucking her Naruto's cock, but she had no problem

deepthroating him to the hilt, since her mouth could stretch way larger than normal human

being, like a snake. The clone that was allowing Anko to suck his cock was clearly having

trouble holding back from fucking her face, and keeping himself on his legs. Naruto made a

mental note of switching with him later.

Hana, unlike her two friends, required no foreplay and let his clone take her in the ass from

behind in a doggy-style position, very ironic because of the clan she came from. Hana was

panting like a dog, with her tongue hanging outside of her mouth, her lips formed a smile

while she was fucked like a bitch in heat.

The last clone, whose cock wasn't inside any hole, however, was eating Yugao's pussy with

his head squeezed between her thighs, working his magic on Yugao's pussy with his tongue

and mouth while fingering her ass with one middle finger. The purple haired woman laid on

the ground, groping her breasts as she moaned out loudly in pleasure and arched her back

every time the clone made her cum.

"Just be careful boys," Naruto chuckled and sighed as Kurenai was finally be able to take

three more inches of his cock into her throat "we don't want to shorten their lifespan, do we?"

"Aye boss."

"That's the way you should do it, Kurenai." Naruto said as he gathered Kurenai's hair into his

hand, grunting in pleasure when she started sucking harder and faster. Soon enough, his cock

swelled bigger before exploring with a cup-size amount of sperm, directly into Kurenai's

mouth and made her choke in surprise, forcing her to release his cock with the second load.

Naruto leaned his back against the longue and let his cock sprayed the cum wildly into the

air, some hit Kurenai in the face while many others travelled across the room.

Before his cock could stop cumming, Naruto reached his hand out and picked Kurenai up,

ripping her panties away from her bottom and turned her around facing away from him

before dropping her down his cock, spearing is cock into her cunt and let gravity take care of

the rest. Kurenai threw her head back with her body shaking like crazy, her mouth was forced

open in a silent scream and went cross-eye with her tongue hung out of her opened mouth

with drool trailing down her chin. Naruto groaned as he felt himself cumming strong again,

his sensitive cock spraying womb white with thick cum.

"Move your hip." He ordered with a slap to her ass, and Kurenai started pounding herself on

his cock, supporting herself with her hands on his knees. Soon, it became too slow for his

liking and the blond Incubus wrapped his arms around her body, pulling her back until she

was rested on his front and started thrusting his cock into her on his own, going with deep

and harsh thrusts instead of slow like Kurenai, wrecking her inside with his massive cock.

"Shit! Here I come!" After several minutes of rough pounding, Naruto finally announced and

grunted and sped up his movement before buried as far as he could into her pussy and let

loose of his orgasm, forcing Kurenai to screech like a banshee, her walls tightened as if she

wanted to milk all of his sperm from his balls "God!" Naruto groaned and pulled back before

he started thrusting as hard as he could again, trying to cum as fast as possible, but it didn't

take him less than fifteen minutes to finish his orgasm. When he was done, he pulled out and

held a well fucked Kurenai in his hand and looked at the clone who was spraying his come on

Hana's back.

"Hey, give me that bitch." Naruto slapped Kurenai's ass, pushing her toward that clone in

exchange for Hana "You can have her."

"Shit boss, you're the best." As Hana crawled toward him, the clone wrapped his arms around

Kurenai and kissed her passionately, lifting one of her legs up so he could thrust into her

pussy while still standing, stirring her inside that was stuffed with Naruto's sperm again

"Shit!"

Naruto looked at Hana for a moment as she turned around and raised her hip as high as

possible, wagging her ass cheeks side to side as if she was wagging an invisible tail.

"Alright bitch." Naruto grinned as he got off the longue and positioned himself behind her,

his hand grabbed her ass and separated them so he could see her asshole "You want to fuck

like a bitch, I will give it to you!" with single thrust forward, Naruto claimed the Inuzuka

woman, groaning out loudly as her ass squeezed his dick like a glove several times too small.

Hana cried out in pleasure, getting fucked in the ass in a doggy-style position had always

been one of her greatest desires. Grinning from ear to ear, Naruto began thrusting into Hana

while reaching underneath her for her tits and began groping the them harshly.

"A tail and a pair of ears and you will look perfect, Hana." Naruto chuckled and kept riding

her until he slammed hip into her ass cheeks, causing to ripple before cumming into her ass.

But instead of switching with his clone, Naruto decided to have a go with her pussy and he

wasn't disappointed, because her cunt was as really tight and almost too perfect for his cock.

After Hana, it was Anko and Naruto chose to double-team her with his clone, using her

mouth while his twin fucked her pussy. The fun became even more intense when the other

two clones decided to join in, ganging up on Anko and used all three of her holes and her

breasts at the same time. After that, Naruto and one of his clones pushed Kurenai and Yugao

against each other into a mirror position with their cocks fucking their asses, allowing them

to kiss each other while the men took them from behind.

When his clones were totally worn out and disappeared, Naruto was the only one left to fuck

the four.

"Shit!" Naruto grinned as he leaned his head against his hands which folded together,

enjoying the feeling of four tongues moving up and down on his cock at every angle "I

fucking love my life."

Line Break

"I'm back!" Naruto called out loudly, but got no reply in return. After the bar was close,

Naruto took all four mistresses of Konoha back to their places, making sure that they're

completely comfortable on their bed and used the medical Ninjutsu he learnt from his

godmother to heal their pussies and asses, making sure that they could walk again when they

woke up "Kaa-chan! Mira! Anyone home?" He asked, checking everyone before walking into

the kitchen to search for the note Kushina always left at home to let him know where she had

gone to.

However, instead of one note like usual, there were two of them. One had the handwriting of

his mother, while the other was a leaflet with a blue magic circle with complicated symbols

he had never seen before on in.

To my big dick son

Naruto couldn't stop himself from cracking like crazy at the way Kushina addressed him.

I have to go help the village prepare for the Chunin Exam and Mira has returned to her home

to pack her stuffs. She is going to move in and live with us from now on.

In case you're horny and we can't be there to please you, Mira left you a magic circle to

summon a devil named Serafall Leviathan, the Leviathan Maou of the Devil Faction, who's in

charge of sexual request, one of the best sex partner you can find in this world. Mira has

already taken care of everything for you, including the payment for anything you like, even

cumming inside her. Just summon that sexy nympho and have fun, alright?

I will return as soon as possible.

"Great!" Naruto grinned and looked at the summoning circle. He was feeling a little worn

out, but would never miss the chance of fucking one of the most powerful women in the

world, especially when she was also a nympho. He also knew about those kinds of request

when he first learnt about the Devil, and it was said that sexual requests were extremely rare

at the current time.

Getting into his room, Naruto stripped down to his birthsuit and summoned the devil.

In a flash, a young woman appeared and Naruto couldn't help but gasp as how beautiful she

was. She had black hair tied into twin tails and blue eyes, She was wearing a pink outfit, or

rather a costume of a cute magical girl, pink in color and exploring much of her belly, and a

magical wand with a big yellow star on the head.

However, while she had a child-like body, and two head shorter than him with a petite frame,

she got the largest pair of breasts Naruto had ever seen on someone with a build like her. It

was something that went with her child-like body, look even bigger than usual.

"Good morning, my dear costumer!" She said excitedly with a childish tone, making a sexy

pose with her white panties flashed underneath her skirt and her breasts jiggled "My name is

Serafall Leviathan, and I'm going to make you feel really good!" She cheered before looking

at Naruto, and widened her eyes in surprise when she saw his state of nakedness "Ara," She

gasped "I didn't know that you're that impatient Naruto-chan." She giggled.

"So... you're Serafall Leviathan?" Naruto asked with a slight chuckle "Not what I was

expecting."

"Ara, don't worry, I can be anything you want. I can grow into my adult form and become

sexier and more mature if you want me to, but I like to keep myself in this form, because I'm

cute and I'm super tight." She said and winked cutely at him.

"You're really excited about this, aren't you?" Naruto chuckled and reached his hand out to

slap her ass, causing Serafall to squeal in surprise.

"Of course I am, it's the first time I have an incubus as my client." Serafall nodded her head

and threw the wand away and started stripping, starting with her shirt before going down to

her skirt. She wore no bra, so the only thing left for her to remove was her pink panties "And

with the cock that size, you're going to tear me apart." Naruto had to admit, with a body like

that, her holes were going to be extremely tight, tighter than any asses and pussies he had

ever fucked "But I'm definitely going to love it!" She screamed and jumped onto him,

surprised Naruto who caught her but was tackled down to the bed.

End of Chapter 7

day at home

Chapter 8

A day at home

"Of course I am, it's the first time I have an incubus as my client." Serafall nodded her head

and threw the wand away and started stripping, starting with her shirt before going down to

her skirt. She wore no bra, so the only thing left for her to remove was her pink panties "And

with the cock that size, you're going to tear me apart." Naruto had to admit, with a body like

that, her holes were going to be extremely tight, tighter than any asses and pussies he had

ever fucked "But I'm definitely going to love it!" She screamed and jumped onto him,

surprised Naruto who caught her but was tackled down to the bed, his mouth got ravished

furiously by the over excited and horny magical girl.

But Naruto wasn't someone who would let his lover dominate him that easily, his pride as a

powerful Incubus, son of Kushina Uzumaki would never allow that, so he grabbed her

shoulder with one hand, pushed her back and tore her dress off with the other. It came off

easily, like tearing paper. Underneath she wore nothing but stockings and her naked, tight

little body turned him on even more.

Naruto then stood up and pusher her to the ground and pushed his cock against her face

"Listen here bitch," I said, crouching down to look her in the eye. "You want to get fucked

that much?! I would love to give it to you but first, you're gonna open your mouth and-"

Before Naruto could finish his sentence, Serafall launched herself at his dick, pushing her

mouth as far down around the shaft as she could go. She gagged, and pulled back, focusing

on sucking the head. Naruto was taken completely by surprise, because even Mira wasn't that

slutty.

After sucking and licking the head for a few minutes she once again attempted to deep throat

Naruto, this time she got a little further, fitting six inches of his man meat into her dainty

mouth before she gagged. Instead of pulling back, she pushed forward once again, but was

unable, despite her efforts, to fit the last two inches of his dick into her throat.

Much to his surprise and amusement, she didn't give up and continued to push her head

forward. After some time being subjected to this overwhelmed treatment from a slutty and

overexcited woman, he was very close, a fact she seemed to understand. Serafall ceased her

futile deep throat attempts and returned attention to the head. She sucked it hard as she

stroked the shaft with both her hands.

Unable to bear it anymore, with a grunt Naruto exploded into her mouth and was surprised

once again when she didn't spill a single drop, her throat worked greedily as she swallowed

his hot spunk.

With a look of satisfaction on her face, Serafall pulled her mouth off of his steel hard dick

and cooed excitedly with her hands on her cheeks "Kya~, so delicious" She giggled, using

her thumb to wipe the droplet of cum at the corner of her mouth and licked it with her tongue.

"Sex demon's sperm is so delicious!"

Before he could even respond she leaned forward once again, this time focusing her attention

on his massive balls. At first she licked daintily but before long she had buried her face in his

sac, slurping noisily, as her tiny hands stroked his cock back as fast as she could.

"Fuck! Girl! You're worse than a Succubus, you know?!" Naruto groaned as Serafall worked

her magic on his manhood once again.

With a loud 'pop', she disengaged her mouth from his balls. She then lay down on her back,

spreading her pussy with her fingers. Her tiny pink pussy couldn't have been any bigger than

a dime, but she was soaking wet. In fact, her stockings were soaked all the way down to her

ankles.

"You're free to cum inside; in my face or in any places or holes you want as well as have any

kinds of sex you want. So please, don't hold back." Serafall gave him a sexy wink and her

best seductive smile, something he could not refuse. Naruto knelt down, pushing her legs

apart and positioned his cock against her pussy. Her eyes were glued to the head of his dick

as he rubbed against her labia. "Fuck! It's so FUCKING HUGE." With a sly smirk, Naruto

penetrated her and had to bite the inside of his mouth to stop himself from cumming right on

the spot.

She was tight, possible the tightest pussy. Penetration might have been impossible if she

wasn't sopping wet. After regaining his composure, Naruto pulled her legs up against his

chest, dangling her ankles over his shoulders, but she was so tiny that her feet only reached

my upper chest.

As Naruto bottomed out in her Serafall made a strangled noise almost like she'd been

punched in the gut and as he pulled back her pussy began convulsing around him. She threw

back her head and opened her mouth as if to scream as she orgasmed around his cock, but no

sound came out. Naruto gave her a few seconds to ride out her orgasm before resuming

sliding his cock inside her extremely tight cunt but barely two thrusts later, had she come

again.

Naruto looped his arms around her legs and grabbed her ass with his hands, easily lifting her

up into the air. Serafall squealed out in delight as Naruto lowered her back onto his erect

cock. Naruto began to bounce her up and down, slowly at first, then faster before going as

fast as he could. He did not stop fucking her during her orgasms, which came at shorter and

shorter intervals.

Naruto lost track of time as he fucked her, too lost in pleasure to notice the time. However, he

was certain that her pussy brought him to orgasm faster than any women in his life, even his

mother and Mira. Screaming in pleasure, Naruto slammed her down on his dick and emptied

his load inside of her womb, forcing her belly to swell up to contain all the come he was

unloading inside of her body. Naruto's knees gave up and he sat down with her on his lap,

exhaling heavily as his cock continued to fill up her inside.

"Fuck! Do you usually come this much?" Serafall asked as she was removed from his dick,

only to be turned around and impaled on his dick once again.

"Well yeah," Naruto said as Serafall's eyes rolled into the back of her head "and you are

proving to be a fine cock-sleeve, Se-ra-fall-chan." Naruto stood up again and released her,

allowing Serafall to fall forward but not for long, because as quickly as possible Naruto

grabbed her pigtails, wrapping them around his hands and hanging her on his cock, forcing

her head up and her tits to jut out "Did Mira pay for this position?" If Serafall could answer

his question, the chance for her to say yes was high, but currently she had lost the power to

use her mouth.

For nearly an hour Naruto fucked her like this, slamming into her ass, forcing her body

forward before pulling back before his grip on her twin pigtails could return her to him, but

thrust his cock forward as soon as it happened, his thick cock spreading her cunt wide,

forcing her to cum almost every five minutes, or maybe less.

Finishing cumming into Serafall for the second time, Naruto pulled his dick out and dropped

her on his bed with his cock very close to her face, giving her some time to pick herself

together. Naruto wiped the drool on his chin with the back of his hand and thought very

seriously about the best way to continue.

"Well? Not so slutty now, aren't you?" Naruto said as he rubbed his cock against her face.

Serafall pouted cutely at his taunt but got slapped across the face by the very own dick that

fucked her senseless just a few seconds ago, hard enough to cause her to fall to the side

"Welcome to the world of sex demon, bitch." He grabbed Serafall by her ankles and lifted her

into the air, holding her upside-down by her legs, and aiming her mouth down at its phallus,

which was throbbing and dripping with a disturbing amount of viscous pre-cum "Open your

mouth."

"Neh, can you stop acting like an asshole, Naruto-chan?" Serafall turned her head around and

asked him, pouting "Also, stop treating me like a common, cheap money whore your

girlfriend brings to the house for you to fuck."

"Then how should I treat you then?"

"A high-class whore." Naruto gave her a blank stare before he slammed her down, impaling

her throat on the first foot of his shaft in less than a second, forcing her neck to swell in an

effort of trying to take it all. Naruto then worked her body all the way down, until his balls

were smashed against her face, and his cockhead was buried in her stomach.

The incubus began shaking her up and down on its cock, fucking her throat in the very same

standing sixty-nine position while his hands were having a tight firm grip on her ass,

moaning and grunting in pleasure as his cock rubbed every inch of her inside.

Then suddenly, once again Naruto's throbbing penis stiffened, going from being as hard as

rock to as hard as diamond and swelling up in both size and length, nearly bursting Serafall

from the inside. "Cu-CUMMING!" the sex demon roared, his cock exploded with a powerful

blast of semen. The position made it hard for her to swallow, so when the semen managed to

fill her stomach, it rushed into her throat, and began to erupt from her mouth. Soon there was

no more room left, and Naruto had to remove her from his dick.

Not for long, though.

Several days later

Chunin exam was coming; Genin Teams and their teachers from all around the Elemental

Nations were coming to Konoha, which had become more crowded than ever. While

everyone, even the civilians were getting really excited about the upcoming event, security

had been doubled to ensure that nothing was going to happen before and during the exam. As

one of the pride Jounin of Konoha, Naruto had been placed as the referee of the third stage, a

series of one-on-one tournament battles between those who passed the first and second test,

the strongest and most talented Gennin of the generation.

Other than that, it was a great chance for him to meet 'n fuck many beautiful and attractive

Kunoichi around the world before making them his personal sex slaves. In one month time,

he was going to have so many cunts to lord over and fuck anytime he wanted to. It was

important for Naruto, the only offspring of a powerful succubus like Kushina, to have as

many women for his harem as possible. Both Kushina and Mirajane had agreed that their son

and lover should start with human women first before aiming for the females of the stronger

beings.

It was ten in the morning but Naruto was still riding his beloved mother on her own bed like

there was no tomorrow. Both mother and son were surrounded by many hot and busty

women, who were getting fucked, basically gangbanged by Naruto's very own clones. While

Kushina, Mira and his new lover, Serafall were showing the superiority in sex making,

Kushina's prided students and teacher, the four mistresses of Konoha plus Tsunade, were

having a lot of trouble taking more than one cock at a time, getting fucked into coma by a

group of horny and overexcited sex demons that refused to let them go until they were

satisfied and forced to disappear.

Kushina was in her Arch Succubus form, and yet she was fucked into submission by her son,

who still had a long way to go to become a great Incubus. Her body shook, and her mind

went numb every time he came inside her before continuing to tirelessly ram his dick as far

into her cum as possible, feeding off from the sexual energy Kushina and the orgy were

emitting.

Naruto then pulled back until only the tip of his cock was left inside, before he did one quick,

rough thrust, shoving all the way into her pussy and into her womb again then pulled back

halfway, then thrust back in roughly. He repeated this process tirelessly, speeding up so that

he was thrusting in and out quicker and rougher than he ever had before. He started smacking

her ass before filling his hands with her melon-size tits.

"OH FUCK!" Kushina screamed as she came, feeling his rock hard cock that was shoved up

her pussy even more than before.

Naruto came at the feeling of his mother's hot, wet, and tight pussy convulsing around him.

He shot his load deep inside her womb, filling her up in a matter of seconds before pulling

out, spraying his load onto her back until Kushina decided to turn around and took his dick

into her mouth, drinking yet another treat of sperm from her horse-hung son.

It wasn't long before Kushina found herself getting fucked hard, again, but in her anal tube.

Around two in the afternoon, with a somewhat satisfied libido and a sexy mother, a slutty

girlfriend, an energetic fuck buddy and five sex slaves fucked so well and pumped with so

much cum that they passed out in exhaustion with swollen bellies; Naruto got dressed and

left the house, wandering around the village and searching for new targets. Konoha was filled

with foreign Kunoichi at the time, so it didn't take him long to set his eyes on a few of

attractive ones.

But before he could approach any of them, Naruto suddenly heard a guy from across the

street say to his buddies, "Hey, look at that chick ass and tits! Man, how much you think

you're going to pay to pound that body of hers." That caught Naruto's interest and he couldn't

help but turn his head to that direction, and immediately liked what he saw.

Standing at the other side of the street, facing away from them and watering the flowers of

her shop, was Misaki Yamanaka, the lady of the Yamanaka Clan and owner of Yamanaka

Flowers, one of the most beautiful women of Konoha, as well as one of its biggest MILF.

Much like her daughter, Ino Yamanaka, she had blue eyes and long golden blonde hair that

flowed all the way down her back, featured a long braid with a small yellow bow at the end.

She was wearing a tight black skirt that only reached a few inches below her gigantic ass,

barely managing to cover it. Her toned abdomen was exposed as she wore a white shirt that

only covered her G-cup breasts, which strained against the thin fabric of her top.

Hearing the comment of the guy, Misaki turned around and gave him a sexy wink, before

walking into her shop while swaying her hip seductively, 'unintentionally' flipped up her short

skirt and showed them that she wore nothing underneath. The two guys behind Naruto

groaned in disappointment when she disappeared from their view and left the area with

painful erections.

Naruto, however, decided to cross the street and enter Yamanaka Flower Shop.

To be continued...

leaf milf's

MILFs at Konoha

Naruto, however, decided to cross the street and entered Yamanaka Flower Shop, where he

was treated with yet another arousing sight of Misaki Yamanaka, who was standing in a sexy

pose while facing away from him, cleaning the wooden shelf behind the counter with a rag.

In such position, whenever she tried to reach for a spot that was out of her arm-reach, her

skirt was hiked up so high that it exposed the lower half fat ass and so did her pussy, in a very

teasing way. She was totally defenseless, and her shop had many costumers at weekends, it's

like she was begging her next costumer to take her and fuck her right inside of her workplace.

It would seem that he wouldn't need to use mind-control spells at all.

With his Shinobi skill, Naruto was able to enter her shop without making a sound and got

behind Misaki without her knowing about it. Naruto stood behind the extremely busty MILF,

admitting her amazing figure with a lecherous grin. His hand shot out, groped her left ass

cheek the moment it was exposed again, making the blonde bombshell to gasp in surprise.

Misaki turned around, but she was surprised when she saw no one standing behind her.

Cling!

She then heard the sound of the door being opened and turned her eyes to it.

"Konnichiwa! Misaki-obaa chan!" Naruto entered the shop once again with his usual grin,

acting like nothing had happened. Since Naruto had come there to buy a lot of flowers for his

mother and Misaki had always been a good friend to Kushina, he was no stranger to

Yamanaka Flower Shop and its owner.

"Ara, Naruto-kun!" Misaki gasped slightly before giving Naruto a smile "Welcome, how may

I help you today?" she had to wonder if Naruto Uzumaki was the one that groped her ass,

because he was known as one of the fastest ninja in the history, it was actually not impossible

for him to grope her ass and get out of the shop without making a sound, or her knowing

anything about it.

Misaki's eyes traveled down to his pant for a second and widened her eyes in surprise when

she saw the outlines of his cock, which was extremely hard not to notice and must be over a

foot long in length and as thick as her forearm. She didn't know how Naruto was able to hide

such weapon from her that entire time, but its semi-hard state had confirmed her theory.

"Well, just come over to get some flowers for my mother, and girlfriend." Naruto shrugged

and grinned at Misaki "Obaa-chan, you look great in that outfit, by the way." He told her with

a flirtatious tone, making Misaki smile.

"Ara, you really think so, Naruto-kun?" Misaki walked around the counter, her hip swaying

seductively.

"Why not?"

"Ufufu, thank you." Misaki giggled before asking "Also, I didn't know you have already had

a girlfriend, Naruto-kun. She must be quite a beauty to catch such a fine young man like you

attention, isn't she?" Naruto nodded his head with a smile "So, what kind of flower does she

like?"

"White flowers should be fine." Naruto said while appearing to be deep in thought "Can you

get me a bunch of white roses, also the usual for my mother?"

"Of course, you just stand there and wait, young man." She smiled and went to get the

flowers for Naruto, putting on quite a show for Naruto, shamelessly showing everything

underneath her skirt for the young man's eyes. Naruto leaned back against the counter and

watched the show with his arms crossed on his chest, groaning quietly in disappointment

whenever her pink pussy wasn't in full display because of her skirt, but nonetheless loved

what he was seeing.

"Next time you try to grope anyone's ass, make sure they don't know that you're the fastest

Shinobi alive." Naruto chuckled sheepishly when Misaki said that to him while wrapping the

cover around the white roses "Also, with how fast you can move, what stopped you from

doing something more? Like rubbing my little pussy." she asked teasingly, but Naruto didn't

feel a little bit embarrassed.

"Well, to tell you the truth, seeing you dress like a slut that, I just could not help myself."

Naruto grinned "But without your permission, I don't think I can do anything more than have

a feel of your great ass." Actually, with the sex-demons' trademark mind-control spell, he

didn't need permission to fuck a woman, because it would simply go against his nature as an

incubus. Sex demons didn't ask for permission if they wanted to fuck someone, and that, was

a fact.

"What will you do if I grant you my permission to do more than that?" Naruto immediately

stepped forward and tried to grab Misaki, but she put a hand on his chest to stop him and

giggled "Back off young man, I'm married and old enough to be your mother." With a smirk,

Naruto disappeared from view and reappeared behind Misaki, who gasped in mock surprise

when Naruto wrapped his arms around her body and hugged her close to him.

"Do I look like I care? You also don't dress like a housewife, Misaki." Naruto grinned, one

his hand travelled down to her body and got underneath her skirt, while the other groped a

handful of her G-cup size breast "Also, speaking of my mother, let me tell you a secret." He

whispered into her ear "I've been fucking my mother since I was ten." Misaki widened her

eyes in shock, but not for long because Naruto inserted a finger into her pussy, causing her to

moan.

"O-oh my..."

"I'm going to enjoy reshaping this little pussy of you, Misaki." He lifted her shirt up, freeing

her tits and smashed his hand on them "What a lewd body you have here, Obaa-chan. Your

pussy seem pretty tight as well, did your husband, Inoichi-sense pay any attention to it lately?

Or his dick is just that small?" Naruto inserted one more finger into her pussy and started

fingering. For a human and a one-child mother, her pussy was really tight "Or both?"

"Both..." she then moaned loudly when Naruto gently scratched the inside of her cunt and

pinched her nipple "actually, it's been years."

"So you dress like this to attract men's attention, hoping that someone will see the hint and

fuck you, don' you?" Naruto chuckled and created a clone to lock the door and turn the open

sign to close sign. The clone the pulled the curtains to cover the windows, making the inside

of the shop become rather dark and disappeared in a poof of smoke "What a slut!" Naruto

then turned her around and smashed their lips together in a heated kiss. As their tongues

danced and Misaki moaned when Naruto groped her barely covered ass, the blonde

Yamanaka snaked her hands into his pant and felt his cock for the first time.

After minutes of passionate make-out, Naruto started kissing his way down her body, licking

the smooth skin of her neck before travelling further down her bountiful tits. After removing

her clothes, leaving her body completely naked, Misaki grabbed both of her tits and offered

them to the incubus prince, which Naruto gleefully buried his face into them before taking

her left nipple into his mouth, sucking while rolling his tongue around the hard nub.

"Ohh yes! That feels so good, Naruto-kun." The woman moaned "Suck on my nipple... just

like that." Much to her disappointment, Naruto didn't stay at her breast for long and kissed his

way down again, using his tongue to lick around her belly-button before putting his hand on

her thigh and lifted her right leg up, licking his lips when her dripping wet pussy was for his

eyes to see and him to do whatever he want.

Naruto gave her cunt a lick to have a taste before deciding that he liked it. Naruto then

plunged his tongue forward, licking into her tight pussy lips. He placed his lips against the

entrance of her tight tunnel and started sucking, thrusting his tongue as far into her cunt as

possible.

"OH fuck! You're so good at this Naruto-kun! Lick me! Eat me!" Misaki cried and rubbed her

cunt against his face, loud moan leaving her lips. Naruto reached soft pink flesh just over him

with his tongue and tasted her juices "Oh fuck!" With one loud, lustful cry, Misaki reached

her climax and came, filling his mouth with her juice. He drank all of her juice, and didn't

spill a single drop.

After a while, when her orgasm finally ended, Naruto stood up and pushed Misaki down. The

moment she was on her knees, Naruto was completely naked, with his cock pointing forward

in a semi-hard state.

Naruto then put his hand on Misaki's head and forced a couple of inch his cock into her

mouth, allowing the busty MILF to get used to his size. Misaki put her hand on his thighs and

let Naruto guide her head on his cock, loving the taste of his delicious cock. Her eyes rolled

into the back of her head when Naruto worked a few more inches of his cock into her mouth.

Soon enough, he was able to press Misaki's face against his hip, while she stared up at him

with lust filled eyes, with plenty of saliva ran down her chin down to her breasts.

With a grunt, Naruto removed his dick from her mouth, letting Misaki to have some time to

catch her breath and leaned his pelvis forward, rubbing the bulbous head of his engorged dick

on her lips. Almost a full minute of doing that only caused her lips to get covered in his pre-

cum, which she licked all with her tongue.

Naruto then pushed his dick forward, signaling Misaki to part those swollen lips of hers. The

blonde Yamanaka complied and opened her mouth as wide as she could, allowing Naruto to

pull her head down and thrust his hips forward, forcing his dick into her mouth and down her

throat. When he was sure that she could take all of his cock without any problem, Naruto

pulled back and roughly rammed right back into her sweet mouth, starting using her face as a

fuck toy.

Since he had already had a lot of sex before coming there, it took Naruto one and a half an

hour to come blow his load into Misaki's mouth. The blonde MILF widened her eyes in

shock as the volume of sperm he was unloading, as she could feel it rushing through his cock

directly with her tongue placed under the thickest vein of his dick. It took Naruto another

twenty minutes to stop cumming and by the time he was done, Misaki was completely full.

"F-fuck, Naruto-kun..." Misaki said in amazement after Naruto had pulled his cock out "How

can you last that long? And... do you normally cum this much?" she asked, putting her hand

on her slightly swollen belly.

"You will be surprise if you manage to drive me insane with pleasure." Naruto grinned and

pulled Misaki onto her feet "I actually can cum more a lot than that, but I guess you're not

that good." He gave her a challenging smile, which she took it and smirked back.

"Oh really?" Misaki glared at him playfully before saying "Are you going to fuck me now?"

"Good and hard." Naruto nodded and was about to bend her down to the counter when

suddenly she put a hand on his chest to stop him "What?" Naruto asked, rather hostilely.

"Sorry honey, but you will have to save it for later tonight." She grinned "I have a get

together with my friends tonight at my house. How about you hold it in for a little bit so I can

introduce you to them?" she then moved closer and whispered into his ear "It's going to be a

perfect opportunity for a fine young hung like you to get that monster satisfied, Naruto-kun."

Naruto's disappointment immediately disappeared and was replaced with excitement at the

thought of another orgy, and more women to lord over.

"Get together?" Naruto asked curiously and excitedly "What kind of get together?"

"The kind a single mother like Kushina would love to join if you didn't mess her up with that

big, fat cock of yours." She stroked his cock and started making out with him.

Naruto could only grin into Misaki's mouth while smiling lecherously.

Line Break

When Misaki said let her grab a dress, it would be better if she didn't grab any and went nude

instead.

Indeed, she wore a long, pale-yellow, backless dress with an extremely low neckline,

showing a lot of her cleavage but overall quite elegant and suited a high-class lady of a proud

Shinobi Clan liked the Yamanaka. However, the fact that it was completely see-through and

Misaki didn't bother to wear any undergarments to cover her sensitive parts had made her

look like a slutty pornstar more than a high-class lady. It also had slits, which went all the

way up to her hips at both sides to show off her amazing legs and creamy thighs.

"This better be worth it," Naruto slapped her ass before saying "or else you will get no love

tonight and I'm going to enjoy destroying this ass of yours, while leaving the rest to my

clones." He was in a in a spacious, air conditioned room. Along the other three walls ran a

wide, horse-shoe shaped longue and some sofas with a low table in the middle of the room.

"I'm sure that you will, honey." She went over and kissed him, as the two started heavily

making out with each other once again "I have always wondered why a symbol of Kunoichi

like your mother has never wanted to spend her free time with us, now I know that she has

her big dick son getting rid of her stress." Misaki moaned when Naruto grinded his cock

against her crotch.

"Indeed she is..." Naruto grinned as he forced Misaki to look at him straight in the eyes "but

you're wrong about one think, Misaki. It's Kushina that help her big dick son, not the other

way around." His eyes glowed with magic and fully claimed Misaki as his. From that point

onward, Misaki wouldn't be able to think about anyone but Naruto, her mind would always

think about him, and her pussy would always in desperate need for his cock. She would have

no more feeling for her husband, and all that she cared about for the rest of her life, would be

Naruto and how to please his cock like a good little sex slave she had been made.

"Misaki, we're here!" the moment Naruto's eyes stopped glowing, was the moment they heard

the voice of Misaki's friends.

"Ara, they're here." Misaki smiled and winked at him "Wait here honey, I will go get them."

And with that, she left the room. Naruto took his seat on one of the sofa and poured for

himself a drink. It was going to be one hell of a night and he could feel it.

As he enjoyed the glass of wine and waited for Misaki to return with her friend, Naruto

suddenly saw a figure outside of the window. It was his mother, in her full arch-succubus

form, wearing a one-piece suit that was very similar to Mira, but dark red in color and way

more revealing.

"Hey there, Naruto-kun." She greeted him cheerfully and easily opened the window to fly in,

even though it was locked from the inside "Preparing for one wild night, aren't you?"

"Kaa-chan, what are you doing here?" He asked in surprise.

"Ara, my son is going to fuck an entire club of Konoha's MILFs and you think that I am

going to miss it?" Kushina winked while floating a few inches before him, giving him some

great view of her tits "Ara..." she smirked slyly when Naruto frowned in curiosity "You have

no idea, haven't you?"

"More or less." Naruto nodded.

"Ufufu, just make sure you don't exhaust yourself, Naruto-kun." Kushina kissed him and put

her hand on the bulge of his pant "You still have two hungry succubae to feed at home, you

know." the former Incubus Queen used her magic to become invisible. Even Naruto couldn't

see her, but he knew that she was still there, running her hand on the bulge of his pant while

sitting on his lap.

"You know me, Kaa-chan, it won't take anything less than a whole village of women to put

your son, and his clones down." Naruto grinned.

After that, he didn't have to wait long for Misaki to return with her friends. The door was

opened and Naruto turned his head to look at them, and finally understood what his mother

meant when she said he was going fuck an entire club of Konoha's MILFs.

They were none other than Konoha's most beautiful and attractive women, the ladies of their

respective clans. He recognized most of them, because they were all friends of his mother

who usually came to his house to see her. All of them were typical MILFs and would not

have looked out of place on the set of a kinky porno movie.

The first, with dark, shoulder length blue hair and pale lavender eyes, was none other than

Hina Hyuuga, the lady of Hyuuga Clan.

The second woman, who entered the room, was a black haired beauty with dark color eyes,

was Yoshino Nara.

Following behind the lady of Nara Clan, was Mebuki Haruno. She had long, curly pink hair

and emerald green eyes. Unlike her friends, she was a normal civilian housewife, but her

beauty and seductiveness wasn't any less impressive.

Next MILF who walked into the room, was a beautiful woman with light brown hair and

matching eyes, Konoha's very own weapon expert, Lin. Her hair, which flowed all the way

down her back, featured two puns on both sides of her head, kept together by white ribbons.

Naruto then smirked when he saw the mother of one of his newest sex slaves, Tsume

Inuzuka, walked into the room. She had an animalistic look similar to that of her daughter,

Hana. She had long, spiky, untamed brown hair, vertical slit-like pupils, elongated canine

teeth and nails. She also had the clan fang markings on her cheeks as well as markings over

her eyes.

At the end of the line, was by far the tallest woman, the busty lady of Akimichi Clan, Aki

Akimichi.

And of course, last but not least, the woman who was pushing them into the room, Misaki

Yamanaka.

Those women dressed elegantly, but like Misaki extremely slutty. Hina Hyuuga was wearing

a skin-tight dress, hugging her every curve, strapless at the top and held up by the way it

stretched over her big melons, falling to mid-thigh; Mebuki's was a little looser and longer,

but was slit up to her waist line on one side, revealing her fishnet hold-ups, and the neckline

plunged to her belly button, clearly revealing the sides of her huge, bra-less tits; Yoshino had

into a mini-skirt that rode low on her hips, exposing the strap of her G-string, and a tube top

that lovingly wrapped itself around her big jugs while Lin was wearing a light color skintight

qipao that hugged her impressive assets like a second skin. It was also slit up to her hip on

both sides, giving him a lot of view to her wide womanly hip and creamy thighs. Tsume was

dressed in a simple but elegant short skirt and a blouse with several buttons undone, giving a

generous view to the inner-side of her melon-size breasts. Last, Aki wore a simple black

dress, with the hem just reaching her stocking tops, and while the front went right up to her

throat, it had a cut-out panel over her enormous mounds of tit-flesh, showing off her deep

cleavage.

"Naruto-kun?" Hina recognized the young man who was sitting on the sofa immediately and

said in his name in surprise.

"Hey ladies." Naruto greeted them with a wide grin.

"C'mon c'mon, let's hurry." Misaki giggled excitedly as she pushed the taller woman, Aki into

the room while her friends were staring at the hung in surprise "the sooner we get into the

room, the quicker we'll able to have fun."

"Misaki, what's Kushina's son doing here?" Mebuki asked while pointing at Naruto, who

stood up from his seat and flashed them a charming smile "Don't tell me that he's..." she

stopped half-way when Misaki started walking toward Naruto and stood next to him.

"Oh yes, he is." Misaki giggled as she ran her hand down his leg, pulling his pants tight

around the impressive length that ran to half way down his thigh. The MILFs' eyes widened

in shock as they realized just how big his prick was, even soft "Ladies, there will be no

talking or discussing tonight, we will head straight to the main event and witness the power

of a real man." She then turned her head around and winked at her friends "Have your seat. If

you don't mind, I will have a go with him first, but feel free to join."

Misaki opened the button on his pants and undid the zipper, smiling as she slid his pants

down his legs. He wore no underwear and the cotton slid over his strong, muscular thighs,

exposing his large balls and inch after inch of his thick, half-hard tube of meat.

"Holy fuck..." Tsume gasped as more and more of his cock was revealed. She sat down

heavily on the longue and started rubbing her thighs together.

"It must be over twelve inches long when hard." Aki commented while licking her lips when

his pants were down to his ankles.

"Thirteen and hard inches long when hard, obaa-chan." Naruto grinned, making the women

gasp in shock "Twelve inches is last month, by the way." Naruto then grunted in pleasure

when Misaki slid the head of his cock into her mouth and started sucking.

"Are you a monster?" the weapon expert asked in shock before staring at his balls "What's up

with Uzumaki? Are they all sexually attractive and well-endowed like this?"

"Well, you can say that." Naruto nodded his head while grinning slyly "So, just curious, but

can I ask why Konoha's greatest MILFs are all here, with a half-naked young man like me?"

He had a feeling that he knew the reason, but asked anyway.

"To tell you the truth, Naruto-kun, but over the last few years we have come to miss the

active sex lives we'd had when they were teenagers, and when're still active Kunoichi." Hina

spoke up from her seat.

"Ah, I get it, so you've the same problem as Misaki." Naruto nodded his head as he removed

his shirt, standing completely naked before the ladies of Konoha, causing them to drool over

his muscular body.

"That, and my husband's dick is too small to make me feel good." Mebuki muttered and

gulped down the entire glass of wine in one go.

"And so, I thought since we were women who had the same problems, why didn't we just

gather together once in a while to talk about our problems, like our neighbors, our kids, our

small-dick husbands..." Yoshino shrugged "It was Misaki who brought up the idea of

bringing some men into our meeting to satisfy our needs for sex. Also to make sure that they

won't bitch about it, we will have their memories erase with Yamanaka ninjutsu as soon as

the fun is over."

"Ah, I see." Naruto then looked at them "You're not going to erase my memories, aren't you?"

"Are you fucking kidding me pup?" Tsume asked while grinning "Of course not. We're not

that stupid."

"But you have to keep it a secret, you know." Lin smiled at Naruto.

"Don't worry ladies, your secret safe with me." Naruto grinned, groaning as Misaki pulled her

head back and sucked around the bulbous knob of his fuck meat, her tongue slavering around

it, coating it in spit, smearing his pre-cum around it. She then let go of his dick and stroked it

furiously with her hand.

The busty blonde then turned around and smiled at her friends.

"Give me that cock." Hina pushed Misaki out of the way and kneeled before Naruto. Her

friends watched as Hina crammed as much of his prick into her mouth as she could, making

herself gag time and again, thick lines of spit hanging from her lips and clinging to the

throbbing length of Naruto's cock. Pulling her head off his fuck meat for a moment, she said

"Good Kami, he tastes so fucking good." she moaned before plunging down on him again. As

she crammed as much of his prick into her mouth as she could, gagging as the fat head of his

knob pushed into her throat.

As he stood there and let Hina hungrily suck on his cock, Naruto pulled Misaki to her feet

before pushing her toward Tsume and made her land on her back on the longue "Tsume-san,

can you prepare her for me? I will need her pussy wet and well-prepared for my cock. I also

have the feeling that you're the best with your tongue."

"You bet, honey." Tsume grinned and flipped the front flap of Misaki's dress to the side and

attacked her pussy, making Misaki moan out loudly in pleasure, but not for long because

Yoshino suddenly appeared above her and pressed their mouth together, kissing her upside

down while playing with her large tits.

Tsume opened her mouth wide and stuck her tongue out, pushing as much as she could into

Misaki's sopping pussy, noisily slurping at the juices that ran from it. She dragged her tongue

downward, licked around her crinkled butt hole for a moment before easing the tip inside,

slipping it in against the muscle. Misaki's body shook and she purred and meowled into

Yoshino's mouth, hanging on the edge of cumming for the second time of the day.

"Well, I think the fun has already started." Mebuki stood up from her seat and walked toward

Naruto with her hip swayed sexually. She and Lin then kneeled down beside Hina and started

slavering themselves to the incubus prince together. He pulled Aki to him and yanked the top

of her dress down to her the side, freeing her large, beautiful tits. Without further ado, he

attacked them, filling his mouth with her nipples and his hands with her soft fleshes.

Backing off from her delicious treat, Tsume observed her handy work with a huge grin on her

face. Misaki's pussy was thoroughly soaked and more than ready to get destroyed by Naruto.

"Alright big guy, it's time to fuck her." with the help of Yoshino, they removed Misaki's

skimpy dress from her body and positioned the blonde bombshell in a doggy-style position,

kneeling on the ground but with her arms and tits resting on the table "Just so you know, this

position is my all time favorite." Naruto couldn't help but chuckle at the irony.

With three loud POPs, his dick and balls were released from Mebuki, Lin and Hina's mouth,

and the blond stopped making out with Aki to approach Misaki from behind, kneeling behind

her and grabbing her butt-cheeks with both hands and positioning his cock at the entrance of

her sopping wet pussy. With a grunt, Naruto eased his cock into her tight snatch, throwing his

head back in pleasure when her walls clamped tightly around his length.

"F-fuck!" Misaki cried with her tongue hanging outside of her mouth "It's... it's so big!" with

another cry, she came around his cock, much to her friends' surprise and Naruto's expectation.

His hands travelled to her hips and used them to pull her toward him, at the same time

thrusting his dick forward, shoving his full length inside of her without warning, resting more

than two inches of his cock into her womb. The blonde Yamanaka screeched as she orgasmed

rapidly around his dick due to the surprising invasion, but she soon began to moan like a

bitch in heat as Naruto started thrusting.

As Naruto fucked Misaki tirelessly, the other women stripped down to their birthsuit and took

their seats on the longue and sofas around and patiently waited for their turn, watching their

friend getting fucked like a cheap whore. They drank the wine, but also drank in the sight of

Naruto's muscular body, ripping with strength as he pounded Misaki's cunt mercilessly and

rode her so hard that she looked like she was about to pass out any second.

Misaki went cross eyed and cried out in pleasure when yet another mind-shattering orgasm

ripped through her body. While moaning loudly in pleasure, Naruto gave Misaki a couple of

extremely fast thrust before burying all thirteen and a half inches of cock inside her to dump

his load directly into her womb. The MILFs watched on in shock as Misaki's stomach

swelled up like a water balloon to contain all the hot and sticky treats he was unloading

inside her.

When he was done, Naruto pulled out of her and grinned when Misaki slid away from the

table and fell onto the floor, panting but with the same ahegao smile on her face. Without

anything to plug her up, his cum flowed out of her pussy, making a massive puddle of boy

cream form under her ass.

"One down..." Naruto said and pulled Hina toward his cock with his hand on her head,

smirking when she immediately started cleaning his cock for him "...six slutty mothers to

go." With a smirk, Naruto used his magic and made them his forever, removing all their

feelings for their husbands and replacing them with the passionate love for him and his cock,

just like how he did Misaki.

Pulling Hina to her feet, Naruto claimed her as well before smashing their lips together,

kissing her hard with his tongue exploring her mouth. His hands went behind her and grabbed

her naked ass cheeks with both hands, his fingers digging into the flesh, lifting her up before

dropping her on his cock, causing nearly two third of his cock to spear into her tight pussy.

He started fucking her in the same standing position, his strong legs did a better job in

keeping him standing than Hina's, and all she could do was pushing her giant tits into his face

while hugging his head into her bosom, to prevent herself from getting impaled freely on his

cock.

He moved her slowly at first, allowing her to get used to his size, before starting to speed up,

hunching his hips as he pulled her down, thrusting his big prick deep into her cunt with every

move.

"Fuck! When will it be my turn?" Tsume cried while rubbing her pussy furiously.

He didn't answer, his mouth full with one of her tits again, but he kept moving Hina up and

down his shaft, shoving his fuck meat into her sopping wet cunt as deep as he could. He was

so deep Hina thought that his huge knob would pop out of her mouth any second, and all she

could do was moaning and cumming like crazy around his giant cum cannon. That went on

for another hour before Naruto decided to empty his potent load inside her and pulled out

when her belly looked big enough.

"Come here, you bitch." Tsume gasped in delight when Naruto grabbed her by her tit and

pulled her toward his cock, which went straight into her throat as soon as she was close

enough "You want my cock that much? Here you go!" Naruto cried and started fucking her

throat with his giant dong "Shouldn't expect anything less from Hana's mother, after all, she's

quite a bitch in heat herself." Tsume widened her eyes at the mention of her daughter, but

paid no further thought to it and kept on sucking her master's cock, her new alpha.

Not for long because Naruto believed it's time to breed his new bitch, by fucking her in the

position she desired.

Tsume's body went limp when Naruto started fucking his cock into her from behind, going

with long and deep thrust while gripping her ass tightly in his hands. Her mouth was opened

in a silent scream, she was cross eyed and her tongue hung out of her opened mouth with

drool trailing down her chin, and started panting like a bitch in heat as Naruto's cock slid in

and out of her pussy.

Eventually with lustful growl, he released his seed inside of Tsume's womb, but he kept

thrusting anyway, allowing her pussy to milk his dick until his orgasm ended.

Mebuki was next, and Naruto simply sat on the sofa and let the pink haired woman ride his

dick while making out with both Aki and Linn. Yoshino, meanwhile, kneeled between his

spread legs and serviced his balls-sack with her mouth. The fun continued until Mebuki was

removed after he filled her womb full of his cum and literally reshaped her pussy into the

shape of his dick. He put Lin on top of Lady Akimichi and Naruto processed to fuck both of

them at the same time, switching between pussies every three minutes before giving them the

same amount of his cum.

Wiping a bead of sweat from his forehead, Naruto turned to the last woman, Yoshino and

lunged at her like a beast driven by lust, pushing her down to the ground and easing his cock

into her pussy, fucking her like there was no tomorrow. As he fucked Yoshino's pussy with

long and hard thrust, Naruto summoned multi clones of himself, creating enough cocks to fill

every single fuckable hole in the room.

After filling Yoshino to the brim with his sperm, the blond gave her to his copies and took his

seat on the longue, breathing heavily as he could feel himself totally worn out after a whole

day of nothing but fucking and cumming.

"Ufufu, you've done it again, Naruto-kun!" Kushina appeared before him once again and

floated a few inches above his cock, smiling seductively as she wrapped her arms around his

neck "Kaa-chan is so proud of you." She nudged his mouth open and kissed him, her tongue

wrestling with his. Kushina easily defeated him in their battle of kissing, and when he

groaned into her mouth, she deepened the kiss and took her seat on his lap.

"Kaa-chan, are you hungry?" Naruto asked after his mother had pulled back, a trail of saliva

connecting their tongue together.

"The question is... are you?" she replied with her own question "Let's have dinner together,

shall we?" Grinning, Naruto flipped his mother over in his hands, holding on his body in a

sixty-nine position, placing each other genitals/meals right in front of them. When Kushina

latched onto his extremely well-endowed cock, Naruto spread her legs and attacked her

beautiful pussy. Both mother and son did their best to make their partner give them the meal

for dinner, and in the end, neither of them was disappointed when cum rapidly filled each

other mouth.

Line Break

"First Naruto-sama, then Kushina-sama..." Mirajane growled as she flew above Konoha,

unseen by all "I'm so hungry." The princess moaned as she held her grumbling stomach with

both hands.

Without Naruto there to feed her sexually, and Konoha's four mistresses as well as its

legendary slug Sannin, Naruto's sex slaves were still recovering from being fucked senseless

by Naruto's clones and were in no condition for another round of sex; Mira had decided to

head out and search for a target at Konoha. She didn't want to disappoint her

boyfriend/master by targeting another man, so currently Mira was aiming for a second best

option whenever she was on a hunt for foods.

She was looking for some young women, but busty enough to catch her attention.

"Aw, where are all the cute girls?" the princess of sex demons looked around and soon found

her targets when she crossed a darker district of Konoha.

The first was a fair-skinned young woman of tall stature and with a curvaceous figure. She

had blue eyes and straight, blonde hair framing her face cut in an asymmetrical bob style with

the front bangs reaching her shoulders. She wore a very low-cut outfit which displays her big

cleavage, with mesh armor underneath, a short skirt and red hand guards, high boots, and a

flak jacket that covered her stomach only, similar to a girdle. She also had a tantō strapped

horizontally to her lower back.

The second was also a blonde, but she had her hair bounded with taut bandages, dark eyes

and she wore red lipstick. She wore a short-sleeved black and purple blouse and black pants,

both of which did nothing to hide her curvaceous figure and large breasts. She also wore

bandages around her arms and legs, with purple fingerless gloves and a chain of blue beads

wound around her left hand as well as a red belt around her waist.

From the symbols on their forehead protectors, Mira could tell that they were Kunoichi, but

definitely not from Konoha.

With a sly smirk, Mira flew down and silently approached her targets from behind when they

walked into a dark alley. She then put on a barrier, to make sure that no one would disturb

them.

Soon enough, lustful cries could be heard all over the area.

End of Chapter 9

new house

Chapter 10

New House

"So, kaa-chan... what is this place and what are we doing here?" Naruto asked curiously

while looking around western land of the outskirt of Konohagakure, paying special attention

to the building, or a mansion with a rather strange design in the middle of the land, built on

flank of the mountain.

It appeared to consist of two separate buildings, with the front one acting as an entry of sort

for the one sitting behind it. The first building structure flanked by two minor wings

protruding upwards, creating a square space before the entrance itself, which sat in the center

of the facade, being flanked by two slender cylindrical towers with pointed tiled roofs, their

walls adorned by elongated, hollow windows with arched tops. Two balconies sat one above

the other between such towers, topping the main door, and sitting on the highest one's summit

is another, larger and rectangular tower, sporting a high, pyramid-shaped tiled roof held up by

pillars, which, on its top part, bore more, smaller pillars, holding up the tiled spire topping the

whole structure. The roof of the main section was similarly tiled and pitched, but the

windows adorning its front walls were rectangular and sport glasses.

From Naruto's position, leading to the structure was a well-kept road which, some meters

before its entrance, crosses with one more street, forming a crossroad in whose center was a

large fountain, possessing a circular pool and emitting water from a slender structure in its

central part; flanking the roads converging here are well-kept bushes, and similarly well-kept

hedges were located among the smaller, but still pretty impressive buildings present in the

area.

The land was also blessed with nature, as there were forests, rivers, lakes as far as the eye

could see.

"This, Naruto-kun, everything that you're seeing right now" Kushina smiled as she patted her

son on his shoulder "is going to be our new home." Naruto gasped, widened his eyes and

looked at his mother in shock "Ara? You seem surprised?" his mother giggled teasingly while

using the back of her hand to cover her mouth in a very lady-like fashion.

"Surprised? I'm shocked, kaa-chan." He admitted truthfully "When did you buy a place like

this?" he asked. His mother was one of the best ninja of his village and was also one of the

most famous, so her missions were usually high-paid, but Naruto was sure that even with that

amount of money, Kushina would never be able to effort a land like that.

However, after seeing how rich Mira was, Naruto believed that his mother was also equally

rich, or maybe even richer than his girlfriend, considering that she was the former Queen of

the world's largest sex-service industry. Mira could buy everything, even a sexy, slutty leader

of Devil Faction for him to fuck on a regular basic, so he wouldn't feel surprise if his mother

bought the entire western land of Konoha and everything that came with her other money.

"Actually, this place belongs to the Uzumaki. When I came to the human world to live, I

altered my appearance to a little girl and was adopted by the heads of the Uzumaki Clan, as

they mistook me for a member of their clan because of my red hair. So you can say that this

place belongs to us now." Kushina shook her head and explained to Naruto "It's one of the

dowries of Shodaime Hokage for his wife, Mito Uzumaki, with a promise that all Uzumaki

would be welcomed to this land. I used to live here when I was still in the Academy, but

moved out a couple of years after I became a Chunin, because as you have already known, I

like to live humbly. It became Konoha's property after that, but two days, I was able to

reclaim it with Tsunade's help. Konoha's high council, aka the group of old geezer," Naruto

chuckled at his mother's choice of words "of course, wasn't happy about it, but it's not like

they could do anything about it. They have to respect the wish of the first." She stated with a

firm tone.

"Damn, I never know."

"Also, you can thank Mira and her mother for our new house." Kushina continued "When I

told her we were going to move out, she immediately went to her mother. Last night, the

engineers and workers came here, renovated my house and built some more buildings."

"In a single night?" Naruto asked in surprise and Kushina nodded her head "Talk about the

magic of magic."

"Serafall's devils also lent a hand in making this place lively." The former Queen pointed out

"They also placed some special and extremely powerful barriers around here to make sure no

one can enter but us, and those who're granted permission by us, can enter this place."

"Great." Naruto smirked. So no one would be able to disturb them.

"As you can see, our home has become too small for the recent activities," Naruto chuckled

sheepishly while Kushina was glaring playfully at her son "so I thought why not move into a

bigger place, a place that my son can bring as many women to and fuck them using as many

clones as he wants to?"

"Damn, you're the best, kaa-chan." Naruto grabbed Kushina around the waist and gave her a

hot, tongue-filled kiss full of love, and lust, which she happily returned. They made out for a

full minute before forcefully removing their tongues from each other, a trail of salvia

connecting them together "Make sure to remind me to give you a special treat tonight."

"Ara, how fortunate of me!" Kushina giggled "Let's go, let me show you around."

Line Break

"Welcome home! Master!"

Naruto felt his cock twitched madly inside of his pants when he saw at least four dozens of

beautiful and incredibly attractive, big tits young women standing in two straight lines and

bowing their head to him respectfully when he entered the main residence. They all dressed

in black and white maid uniform. The top of their uniform was skintight, and extremely

skimpy, with the sleeves cut off and so small that it left the bottom portion of their large milk-

jugs completely exposed, thus allowing the maid to flaunt her sex abdomen and . The black

skirt, meanwhile, was wide and extremely short and reached just an inch beyond the crotch,

giving view to their heart-shape ass cheeks, and teasingly their pussy as well, as they wore no

panty. The outfit was completed with stocking and garter belts, and of course, white maid

headband with black liner.

"Naruto-sama!" Before he could say something, Mira appeared from the room at the left and

threw herself at him, wrapping her arms and legs around his body before crashing her mouth

into his, kissing him passionately while rubbing her sexy body, especially her large tits

against his chest "Welcome to your new home."

"Mira-chan... what's going on here?" Naruto asked

"Ara? Do you really think that I'm going to take care of this place all by myself?" Kushina

asked teasingly with a wink "Of course we need servants to do something like that, dummy."

"However, you won't be able to find another man other than yourself, or your clones around

here, which mean there're only maids." Mira then grinned slyly while saying "Also, they're

all Succubi, whose jobs, other than taking care of your house, are taking care of your need

and sexually please you whenever and wherever you want, as long as you're here."

"Then... those buildings outside..."

"Yes, it's for the maids to live." Kushina nodded her head, putting her hands on her hip "We're

still choosing the head maid, so in the meantime, I will be in charge of the business around

here." The maids all nodded and bowed their head at Kushina.

"Don't feel so surprise, Naruto-sama." Mira gave him a light perk on the lips "You're the son

of Kushina. Former Queen of Sex demons or not, she's one of the most respected women in

our world. Treating her son like a royal Incubus prince is the least we can do to show our

respect to her." Naruto could only nod his head.

"So, what do you say Naruto-kun?" Kushina asked, looking at her son "Are you satisfied with

our new home?"

"You're damn right I am." He once thought he would never be able to call anywhere rather

than his house home, guess he was wrong then "This is the best, thank you Kaa-chan, Mira-

chan. I will make sure to return the favor to you two, as well as Eva-san and Serafall!"

"Ufufu, all I ask from you is three meals per day, and some snacks here and there, Naruto-

sama." Mira winked and kissed him again.

"Great, I'll use the bath on the second floor, if you don't mind." She gave Naruto a

meaningful wink, before walking away, heading to the second floor.

"So, Mira-chan, are you saying that I can fuck any of these maids, whenever and wherever I

want?" The white haired succubus nodded her head.

"Also however you want." She added "The girls are more than happy to let you fuck them

stupid and dump your load into them, right girls!?" she asked loudly, and the maids cried at

the same time.

""Yes, we're, Mirajane-sama!"" Naruto couldn't stop himself from laughing excitedly after

hearing such enthusiasm in their voice.

"Is there anything you want to know, Naruto-kun?" Mira asked and Naruto nodded his head

"Say it."

"Do I need to wear any pants in here?" he got his answer immediately when Mira removed

herself from him and tore his pants apart, leaving him completely naked from the waist

down. The maids drooled at the sight of his cock, some of them were also finding it hard to

mindlessly lung at his cock.

Line Break

As soon as Naruto returned to the master bedroom, his room after having a hot and kinky

dinner with Mira, he was treated with the sight of his mother, lying on his bed waiting for

him in nothing but a set of skimpy lingerie, black in color, featuring a lacy bra that was

struggling to contain her huge, round, perfect tits and tiny G-string that failed miserably to

hide her fat pussy lips. Her lingerie was completed with thigh high stockings.

"Can I have my reward for being such a good mother now, Naruto-kun?" Kushina asked,

running her hand through the valley between her tits, a sly smile appeared on her face when

she saw his cock slowly stood to full mast, revealing his massive balls sack underneath while

throbbing and twitching with needs.

The corner of Naruto's lips curved up slightly as he leered at his mother's sexy form, his

hands reached to his behind and locked the door, making sure that no one would be able to

disturb his high-quality time with his mother. It'd been awhile since he last had a sole session

with his mother, and intended to make it up for her.

And with that, Naruto walked toward his mother and climbed on the bed, his cock leading the

way. Kushina lied down, and let her son climb onto her body, his hands reached out and

grabbed her wrists, forcefully bringing them together above her head with one hand "Open

your mother." He ordered with a firm tone while gathering a large amount of salvia in his

mouth, and positioned his head right above her. Kushina was more than happy to obey his

wish, she opened her mouth wide, and drank the saliva her son was giving her, using his

tongue to keep the stream of saliva steady. He then lowered his head down and placed his lips

onto hers; crashing their mouth together and filling her mouth with his tongue, giving her a

kiss full of love and lust, and Kushina returned the kiss with just as much passion.

They kissed, tongues darting into each other's mouths and met in a wrestling battle for

dominant. Kushina moaned into his mouth as he sucked on her tongue and forced her to gulp

down his saliva. His free hand roamed around her body, lifting one of her thigh up so he

could grope her amazing ass. It continued on for another ten minutes before Naruto decided

to end their make out session and start something more intense.

By turning around and put his cock right on his mother's face, Naruto put the both of them in

a sixty-nine position, with him being the one on top. He then moved her G-string out of the

way and used both hands to spread her pussy lips, licking his lips when he saw the inside of

her pussy, a perfect tunnel of flesh made for his cock only. Naruto then drove his head

forward and started eating her out, giving her several licks with his tongue before inserting it

into her tight fold, his lower lip brushed against her clit, making Kushina shudder in pleasure.

The red haired woman cooed lovingly as she nudged her face against his twitching cock, with

his heavy balls resting on her forehead. Kushina started trailing kisses along the underside,

and the throbbing veins of his length. She then kissed around the head of his cock, paying

extra attention to the meatus, even going as far as trying to put her tongue into his cock,

which resulted in a massive glob of pre-cum being sprayed right into her face and some got

into her mouth. After licking it clean, Kushina took three inches of his cock into her mouth

and popped her head gently on his cock, slurping nosily while licking around the girth.

Naruto groaned while receiving her pleasurable treatment, but it wasn't enough to make him

cum. Her slow and gentle pace could only make his cock painfully hard.

So he decided to stop eating her pussy and find some release for himself. Placing both hands

on her thighs, Naruto took back the control of his hip and slowly lowered it down, pushing

more of his cock into her mouth. Kushina knew what her son was trying to do, so she arched

her back slightly and leaned her head back, making a straight tunnel for his dick to slide in.

With a groan, Naruto sheathed all of his cock inside of her tight pharynx, going cross-eyed

with pleasure. His balls rested on her eyes, blocking her vision.

"Fuck!" Naruto cursed as he pulled back three inches before thrusting forward, feeling

himself really close to cumming but managed to hold it in. He then repeated the process, but

with five inches of his cock, and when he thrust his cock back in, he did it with more force

and speed. He kept doing it over and over, adding two more inches each time he pulled out

and more force when he pushed his cock back in, until there was only the head of his cock

left inside her mouth, and he was mercilessly slamming his hip down her face, face fucking

her like he was fucking a pussy.

After twenty minutes of bending up pleasure, Naruto chose to give in and emptied his balls

directly into his mother's stomach, filling her up to the brim. Kushina's belly bloated in

seconds, but soon her body absorbed his cum and returned it back to normal. Naruto pulled

back slightly and sat down the spot above Kushina's head, but his cumming cannon was

pretty much still inside of her mouth, allowing the arch-succubus to taste his cum before

gulping mouthful after mouthful down.

"Oh man, drink it kaa-chan." Naruto moaned and reached his hand out to hold onto her large

milk-jugs, while Kushina was gleefully gulping down a near endless stream of cum from his

cock. "Drink my cum!" After several more minutes, Naruto's powerful orgasm ended, and

Kushina released his cock in a wet POP.

"These boys must be working really hard lately." Kushina turned around and drove her face

into his crotch, holding his balls up with one hand so she could kiss them while the other

furiously stroking his cock, keeping it hard and nice for her pussy, or whatever fuckable

places on her body that son was going to take next "Ah... I can feel the fresh cum already, as

expect from my man." Naruto smirked when Kushina called him her man, and decided that

he should also show her the same amount of respect.

"You know me, Kushina." He said, running his hand through her hair "I'm always ready for

more, and even more than that." Kushina cooed excitedly and gave his cock once last kiss

before getting on her knees before him, removing her lacy bra and smiling at her son in a

sexy pose with her hands on her hip.

"God kaa-chan, you're so beautiful." Naruto said breathlessly.

"Just a reminder, Naruto-kun," Kushina winked and turned her body, making her boobs sway

side to side erotically "it's not for your eyes only." Kushina smirked when Naruto took hold

of her chin and forced her mouth open so he could kiss her again. He then put his hands on

her shoulders and pushed her down to the bed, letting Kushina take his cock and guide it to

her pussy's entrance. The young incubus wasted no more time and slid his cock into her tight

pussy, forcing a total of ten inches of his cock into the tiny wet hole in one single thrust.

Kushina's eyes rolled into the back of her head as Naruto started pounding his cock into her

pussy, and wrapped both of her hands and legs around him in an effort to make him go

deeper. Taking her ankles into his hands, Naruto spread her legs out to the side before

positioning himself into her pussy, causing his mother to grab fistfuls of the bed sheets and

scream out in pleasure.

"Yes that's it! Fuck your mother just like that you big cock mother fucker!" screamed

Kushina as she threw her head back while her amazing tits were swaying back and forth on

her body, which was quite a sight for Naruto.

The blond continued to thrust his cock into his sexy mother, feeling like he was going to melt

in the amazing warmth of her core. Holding her legs by the ankles, he then pushed them up

until her knees were pressed tightly against her breasts, and started slamming himself down,

spearing his cock into her core with such force their bed started to shake.

Eventually, it became too much for Naruto and he came to his limit in less than thirty minutes

after that, slamming his cock into her pussy ball deep once last time before unloading many

gallons worth of cum into his mother's tight snatch. As his cock kept horsing sperm into her,

Naruto leaned forward and took his mother's tongue into his mouth, taking her back from the

world of absolute bliss.

"It's time for the gangbang you love so much, Kushina." As clone after clone appeared from

poofs of smoke, making it a total of fifty young men with identical yellow hair, blue eyes,

extremely well-hung and erected dick, Naruto spread her ass cheeks apart, speared his cock

into her backdoor without any warning, lied down on his back and began to bounce Kushina

up and down on his cock. The clones climbed on the bed and surrounded them on the bed.

Kushina found herself drooling like crazy when she saw the all the big cocks around her, and

the mere thought of getting fucked by fifty one cocks in a single night simply drove her crazy

with lust.

Line Break

"So? I have to do this every day?" Naruto asked curiously while looking at what could be

called the biggest, largest, most exciting blowjob/feeding orgy he had ever seen in his life. He

was currently standing at an enormous, stadium size dining hall, where hundreds, possible

thousands of maids were on their knees, and standing before them, as naked and cock as hard

as the original, were an equal amount of clones.

"Yes, at breakfast, lunch and dinner." Mira smiled slyly "They're succubus, they're the

servants of this place but they're also workers employees. You have to pay to have their

services. Pay them with money, they will keep this place clean and livable for us, which our

mothers have already taken care of that." She then put her hand underneath his balls and

gently fondled them in her palm "But pay them with your rich sperm, and they will serve you

from A to Z."

"Ah, I see." Naruto nodded his head in understanding.

"It's so fortunate that you can create so many clones at a time." The princess said "Or else

you will have to take care of their meals yourself, and I doubt you can survive the first two

hundred." They both laughed at that. As Kushina put it, he had godly stamina, but Naruto had

his limit, and against an army of sperm-thirsty succubae, without his clones at his side, he

would be sucked until there was no life left inside him.

Speaking of Kushina, the red arch-succubus was currently recovering in Naruto's room, with

a bloated belly, a fucked stupid smile and a body covered in a blanket made of his sperm.

Naruto got to admit, he loved the way his life was at the moment.

Especially after Mira got on her knees and started blowing his hard dick.

sexy uchia

Chapter 11

Sexy Uchiha

It was the day of the Chunin Exam, and Naruto awoke to find his slut for a mother bobbing

her head up and down his cock, taking the entire monstrous shaft in. Sensing her beloved son

waking up, Kushina slide all the way to the tip of the precious cock, before looking straight at

Naruto and going all the way to the base of his pole, her eyes crossing slightly as she tasted

his amazing dick. The blond incubus felt her swallow rapidly around her cock, desperately

hoping for some of his delicious sperm to enter her mouth.

"Holy fuck!" Naruto groaned, feeling his balls clenching tightly. "Keep that up and I am

gonna drown you in my cum, kaa-chan!"

Kushina reared back, thick ropes of spit and pre-cum linked her lips and her son's cock before

she spat them heavily onto his prick, smearing the mixture all over his hard cock. With barely

a pause she stuffed his cock back into her mouth, giving him a full minute of sucking before

she took his entire monstrous cock into her mouth, pushing him over the edge for the first

time of the day.

"Fuck! Yeah!" Without further ado, Naruto blew his load straight into his slut's eager

stomach. His cock swelled in his mother's throat and began spurting out huge, thick ropes of

sperm. Kushina drank his cum eagerly and didn't spill a single drop of his precious cum.

Naruto grinned in satisfaction and put both hands behind his head as he continued to feed his

mother with a nearly endless stream of fresh and hot sperm. Life of an Incubus with a royal

status was treating him very well. He got a mother who was more than happy to bend over

and use her body to satisfy him, a girlfriend who couldn't live a day without his cock inside

her at least thrice, a devil lord who randomly visited him to get fucked silly, and best of all a

massive harem of countless sexy and beautiful women for him to fuck anytime and anywhere

he wanted.

After a few more volley of sperm that was emptied inside her mouth, Kushina pulled back

and sucked on his big, bulging knob. Eventually, she let it go and looked up at him.

"Hope you like Kaa-chan's wake up call, Naruto-kun." Kushina smiled, blowing her son a

kiss and putting her hand around his cock, gently jerking him off.

"Definitely, it's the best." Naruto sat up, drooling at the sight of his mother's naked and erotic

body. One hand latched onto her breast and its nipple while the other grabbed the back of her

head, Naruto pulled the former Queen of sex demon toward him and smashed his mouth

against her. Lust driven, Naruto pushed his mother down to her back and spread her legs as

wide as he could with his hands. Still pretty much raping her mouth with his tongue, he

forced his hip down, sliding his cock into her extremely tight cunt.

"Whose slut are you, Kushina?" Naruto asked lifting his head up and slapped her tits, making

them sway and jiggle erotically.

"Yours!" she moaned, throwing her head back and coming when her son slammed his cock

into her womb.

"And who am I slut?"

"Naruto-sama!" she screamed and came again when he pulled back, drawing half of his long,

thick cock from her pussy before spearing it back in, stretching her cunt to its utmost limit,

his balls slapping against her ass. Again and again, he fucked her, stuffing her full, her pussy

walls spreading wide as they took the long, thick member inside.

"Oh Naruto, fuck me! Uuhnnnnnn fuck me you big dicked mother fucker!" Kushina moaned

and babbled as he fucked her over and over. She came hard and fast, shaking and moaning,

her body shuddering as the incubus continued fucking her, slamming his huge cock into her

time and again. Kushina's eyes rolled back in her head as Naruto's huge cock buried itself

over and over inside her cunt, filling her up like never before, fucking her through her

orgasm. She gasped and shook and just as she came down from her cum, she came again.

Naruto grunted, moaning as he pushed every last inch of his monstrous cock inside her, his

balls smacking her ass and then came with like a broken high-pressure water faucet. His cock

bucked inside her, his balls clenched and a torrent of sperm poured into her pussy. Within a

couple of spurts, Kushina felt her cunt get filled up with hot boy cream.

Naruto reached down and grabbed his cock, pulling it free from her pussy as another blast of

cum shot from the rounded knob, launching into the air before landing in a thick, unbroken

white cord running from Kushina's shoulder, over one heaving tit, and across her stomach. He

grabbed Kushina by her hair and pulled her up, position her face right before his cum cannon.

His cock twitched again and again, splashing volley and volley of sperm onto her face.

When he had finally stopped cumming, Kushina opened her mouth and sucked the last

leftover of cum from the inside of his cock, cleaning it clean from her juice using her tongue.

"Here!" Naruto pulled his cock out of her mouth and wiped some of the sperm on her right

cheek before saying "Eat it Kushina, it's your breakfast." He said and she happily complied,

licking the thick cream from his cock. They repeated the process over and over, until

Kushina's face was completely clean "You're such a good girl, kaa-chan. I should give you a

collar with my name brand on it."

"You should add a chain, so you can pull kaa-chan back to her proper place whenever she

tries to cross the line." The former queen cooed excitedly at the thought before rolling off the

bed. She stood up and picked up her lingerie which was lying on the floor of his room.

"Are you leaving already?" Naruto asked, a little disappointed that his mother couldn't stay

with him a little longer "I can let you have a free ride." He pointed to his still pretty much

aching cock. Mira received a call from her mother last night so she left earlier that morning.

"As tempting as it sounds, Naruto-kun," Kushina smiled at her son "today I don't have the

time for that, you know, it's the first day of the Chunin Exam and I have to be there." Naruto

nodded in understanding. Kushina then raised her hand and clapped them twice. Instantly, the

door of his room was pushed open and a group of maids entered the room "When you're

properly satisfied, you should get going too. While you're not needed during the first and

second day of the exam, as one of the best and promising candidate for the Hokage seat in the

future, you will be needed around the village."

"Almost forget that I'm a Shinobi." Naruto chuckled and gave the maids the permission to

strip naked and climbed onto his bed, gathering around him "I will see you later, love you

kaa-chan."

"Love you more, sochi-kun." Kushina giggled and walked out of his room, leaving Naruto in

the cares of the servants of their palace.

"Now, which one of you sluts wants to be my breakfast?" Naruto asked, grinning slyly. It was

not an understatement to say that Naruto was outright drooling.

Line Break

While most people would call it going on a patrol around the village, Naruto called it he was

on a pussy hunt.

You might ask why he needed to search for more women when he had a massive, almost

uncountable number of succubae to fuck... the reason was quite simple and it had been stated

before. The maids of his house, also his mother and Mira had so much experience in having

sexual intercourse, making them experts in the art of fucking, Naruto wanted to fuck a normal

woman and watch them break under the might of his cock. It's just for the fun of it, actually.

"Kami! That cock must be bigger than arm!" cried out a Kunoichi from Kumo, all the girls

around her nodding in agreement, their fingers rubbing their respective cunts.

As it was said before, as an incubus Naruto basically felt no shame. Wearing his usual attire

with near skin-tight pants, Naruto walked around the village drawing rapt attention of every

girl and woman he came across, his giant package drawing their eyes like moths to a flame.

With his strong aura of a male sex demon, he left all the women with their little pussies

aching for relief.

His eyes landed on the group of women and immediately he marked them as his next targets.

When they started giggling and discussing the possibility of being fucked stupid, Naruto

decided to approach them, flaring his power along the way. However, before Naruto could

get anywhere close to them and start working his way into their skirts, he spotted another,

much better target in Yamanaka Flower Shop.

However, he wasn't talking about Misaki Yamanaka, who was dressing like an ultimate slut

next door. He was talking about the person who was talking to her, a raven-haired beauty,

Mikoto Uchiha, the current clan head of Uchiha clan after her husband and many core

members of the Uchiha Clan was killed by her eldest child, Itachi Uchiha. For what reason he

did that, Naruto didn't know, but ever since that fateful day, Mikoto had become the clan's

leader. Naruto heard from his mother that Mikoto was doing her best to rebuild her clan back

to its former glory so it's rare to see her outside like that. Naruto rarely saw her these past few

years, though.

A beautiful face with long, flowing black hair and onyx black eye, a voluptuous body

supported by a pair of E-cup tits, a small waist but wide, sexy hip and a big, heart-shaped

ass... A woman like her caught his eyes and made him drool right away.

Hold on a second...

...drool?

Naruto used the back of his hand and wiped the drool away from the corner of his mouth. He

had never paid much attention to it, but he could notice that when a sexy as hell woman was

in sight, he started drooling.

"Maybe I should ask Kaa-chan about this," Naruto said to himself while crossing the street.

Cling!

"Ohayou gozaimasu! Misaki-obaa chan!" Naruto pushed the door open and entered the shop

"Can I get some fl... Mikoto Obaa-chan is that you?!" Both women heard his call and turned

their head around, with Mikoto in surprise and Misaki in lust.

"Ara, good morning to you too, Naruto-kun." Mikoto greeted him while smiling brightly

while Naruto was waving his hand to Misaki "I didn't expect to meet you in a place like this."

"I should be the one who said that, Mikoto-obaa chan." Naruto shook his head "It's so rare to

see you outside like this. It's been months since I last saw you, actually."

"It has?" Mikoto gasped in surprise before chuckling nervously "Well, I guess I should have

paid more attention to the outside world." She then asked him "How's Kushina, Naruto-kun?

Is she doing well?"

"Of course she is." Naruto nodded his head while grinning "She has me to take care of her

you know." His confident words made Misaki and Mikoto giggle, but for two different

reasons.

"Aw, she's so lucky to have someone like you as her son." The Uchiha said before looking at

Misaki "So what are you dong here, Naruto-kun? Are you buying flowers for your

girlfriend?" She asked teasingly.

"Girlfriends, actually." Naruto said it casually, making Mikoto gasp in surprise "You know,

since I'm one of the two last members of Uzumaki Clan, when I'm eighteen years old I will

have to perform CRA to restore my clan, so I thought why not get used to the idea of having

multi lovers from this point?" he shrugged.

"I... see." Mikoto nodded her head slowly "So can I know who the lucky girls are?"

"It's a secret, Obaa-chan." Naruto smiled.

"Excuse me, Mikoto-chan." Misaki called out to gain the black haired woman's attention

while carrying a large and tall flower basket "Here's your order." She said and put the basket

down to the ground.

"Ara, I didn't know it'd be this big, Misaki-san." Mikoto gasped in surprise while looking at

the basket of flowers.

"Wow, that's a lot of flowers there, Obaa-chan." Naruto said in amazement before asking "But

what do you need it for anyway?"

"Well, one of the members of my clan is getting married in the next couple of days. I'm

preparing the wedding with him." She explained "His fiancée like flowers, so he wanted to

buy a lot of them for her. He was on a mission today so he asked me if I could come to get it

for him."

"Wow, he did plan it big, didn't he?!" Naruto chuckled in amusement "Well, obaa-chan since

I'm currently free, I can lend a hand if you want."

"Really?" Mikoto asked hopefully but then said, "I don't want to trouble you or anything

Naruto-kun."

"Please, it's not trouble at all, Obaa-chan." Naruto grinned and picked up the basket before

placing it on his shoulder "See, it's a piece of cake." The basket and the flowers inside made

it cumbrous, but by no mean, it was heavy for someone like Naruto.

"Okay then." Mikoto nodded her head with a smile "Please follow me Naruto-kun."

"Misaki Obaa-chan, I will return in a moment to get my usual, so make sure you prepare it

well and moist for me, okay?"

"Okay!" She nodded her head cheerfully.

"See you later, Misaki-san." With that, Naruto and Misaki walked out of the shop. Naruto had

a little problem walking pass the door, but it was quite easy after he managed to pull the

basket out.

The blonde Yamanaka waited until Naruto and Mikoto had disappeared from her view to

close the door, locked it carefully and pulled the current to cover the windows. As she started

stripping, a pervert and ahegao smile crossed her face as she thought of what was about to

happen to her.

She didn't have to wait long, though, as three clones of Naruto appeared in her shop in a

flash, naked with rock hard cocks, ready to make her their bitch.

Line Break

"Put it down right here, Naruto-kun," Mikoto said as she pointed at a spot in the corner of the

living room. The journey back to Uchiha compound was uneventful, but Naruto did earn a lot

of attention from everyone for carrying a massive basket of flowers like that on his shoulder.

"Here you go," Naruto said as he carefully placed the basket down to the spot.

"I'm sorry for troubling you, Naruto-kun." She said as he stood up "I should have brought a

couple servants with me."

"Like I said, Obaa-chan, it's no problem at all." Naruto grinned "It's bulky because of the

flowers, but it's not heavy..." He chuckled and then noticed a dark blush on Mikoto's cheeks.

Innocently, he asked "Obaa-chan, are you alright, your face are all red. Do you have a fever?"

Ever since Naruto stepped his foot into Mikoto's house, he had been unleashing a considered

amount of his aura and directed it toward Mikoto. It's not much, but more than enough to

make a human woman like Mikoto feel hot between her thighs and wanted to have sex with

him.

"I-I don't think so." Mikoto shook her head. Her eyes unconsciously travelled down to his

pants, and she swallowed heavily when she saw the impressive size of his cock. The Uchiha

quickly recomposed herself and looked back at his face "Anyway, would you like to have a

cup of tea with me, Naruto-kun?"

"Nah, I think I will be fine." Naruto shook his head with a grin, taking a step closer to Mikoto

"I should get back to Yamanaka Flower shop now to get the flowers."

"Are you sure?" Mikoto asked again while rubbing her inner thighs together. She wanted him

to stay...

...but most of all, she wanted him to fuck her. His scent filled her nostrils, clouding her mind

from any common thoughts.

"Well, alright then. The flowers can wait." Naruto grinned and turned to look at Mikoto in the

eyes. He used his spells on her, altering her memories about him and making the Uchiha

mistress his forever. When he was done, Naruto placed a hand on Mikoto's chin and ordered:

"Open your mouth and stick out your tongue for me, Mikoto." He said, and she did just that.

Wasting no more time, Naruto captured her lips, sucking her tongue into his mouth.

In a flash, Naruto and Mikoto disappeared from Uchiha compound. Since the place wasn't

exactly soundproofed and located in the middle of Konoha, it's not wise for him to fuck her

there.

His destination, of course, was his chamber.

As soon as he was there, Naruto let go of her lips and threw her on the bed before starting to

strip. When he was completely naked, Mikoto's eyes nearly bulged out of her eye sockets

when she saw his soft, yet incredibly massive dick dangling between his thighs. Her blush

deepened when she caught the side of his balls, which were so big that not even his big tree

trunk could hide them away.

"Girls, since she's too lost in the sight of my glorious cock," Naruto spoke to the group of

maids that were always present in his room, in case he wanted to have some quickies "Can

you please come over and strip her for me?" he asked, licking his lips as he thought about

fucking the second hottest piece of ass in the village.

"Yes, Naruto-sama." The maids giggled and walked to Mikoto, who got a little uncomfortable

when got stripped by a group of hot and half-naked women. Eventually, Mikoto was

completely naked and Naruto couldn't stop himself from drooling at the sight of her fuckable

MILF body.

He hit the jackpot that day.

"Thank you." Naruto smirked when the maids took turn to kiss and lick his cock before

returning to their spots around the room "Now, onto the main course." He said, looking at

Mikoto "Would you like to suck my cock, Obaa-chan?" He asked while grinning like an idiot.

Of course, with the spell he put in her mind, how could she refuse.

Drool trailed down the corner of her mouth as she walked on her knees closer to him before

putting her hand on his cock, bringing it to her eyes level and feeling its weight in her hand.

Licking her suddenly dried lips, Mikoto opened her mouth and kissed the head of cock with

love before lifting it up so she could do the same to his balls. After kissing both of his balls,

she took one into her mouth and started sucking gently, her other hands moved to his cock

and she began to stroke it with both hands, making Naruto groan at the feeling of her small

hands.

Releasing his ball in a wet pop, Mikoto stuck her small tongue out and began to run it up the

side of his shaft. She enjoyed the salty quality of the sweat on its skin as she ran her tongue

over various parts of his member, licking it all over, earning a moan of approval from Naruto.

"Before this can get to the juicy part where I will definitely reshape your pussy, Obaa-chan."

Naruto said as his cock grew bigger and longer "I really don't do gentle, so you better prepare

it first." Mikoto nodded her head and moved one hand down her pussy. With the size of the

monster resting on her face, he would definitely tear her apart.

But for some reason, she really loved the sound of it.

Mikoto noticed the glob of pre-cum at the tip of his dick and immediately leant forward to

lick it, taking it into her mouth before swallowing heavily. She then pushed the large cock-

head into her mouths, wrapping her luxurious lips around the tip. Once she had taken at least

five inches into her warm mouth, she began sucking his cock. She moved her head back and

forth, sucking more cock into her outstretched mouth while her tongue was working it all

around his cock, coating it with her saliva.

"Shit, you've a talent at this, Mikoto." Naruto groaned when she pushed his cock further

down her throat until all thirteen and a half inches were inside. Tears ran down her cheeks

with his entire dick in her mouth, and slowly she drew back, sucking along the way until she

was at his tip before pushing her head forward again, that time a little faster. Mikoto raised

her hand and played with his huge balls. For a human woman, she was doing pretty well, as

the only ones that were able to deepthroat him without gagging before were Tsunade, Anko,

Tsume.

However, he would better now start fucking her face. Mikoto looked like she was at her limit,

a simple thrust of his hip and she would definitely get chocked.

Eventually, after several minutes of sucking, Naruto grunted and his dick expanded in size.

He exploded into her mouth, releasing cum constantly down her throat. Mikoto eyes flew

open wide and tried her best to gulp the thick white semen down, but to no avail, there was

too much and she gagged, some flew out her nose and her stretched mouth.

Naruto decided to pull out, with his dick still throbbing, and covered her face with a full

mask of his sticky sperm. After minutes he finally stopped, allowing Mikoto to start

swallowing the cum, taste it before coming to love the sweet taste.

"It tastes so delicious." Mikoto stated cleaning herself, licking the cum from her face and

fingers "How can you cum so much?" she asked, her hands reaching out for his balls.

"I have always been wondering that myself, Obaa-chan." Naruto grinned, wiping the drool

from the corner of his mouth "You've already done your job, Mikoto. Now, let me handle the

rest." The black haired woman chuckled nervously as she looked at his massive, twitching

dick. With an effortless movement, he put his hands under her knees and picked her up,

holding her in the air and right above his erect member.

Wasting no more time, Naruto brought her down to his dick and pushed forward, the

mushroom head entered her soaking wet pussy before the rest of his cock started sliding into

her pussy.

"Oh fuck!" Mikoto screamed trying her best to take him in. The giant dick inside her

stretched her tight pussy further than imaginable.

With a powerful thrust, Naruto shoved his full thirteen cock into her, slamming the rest and

more than just a couple of inches into her womb. Mikoto's head flew back and screamed,

instantly spurting her juice on to his cock.

Naruto grinned as he had finally had her in the place he wanted.

"You're so fucking tight, Mikoto." Naruto stated as he started fucking her with long and hard

stroke, holding her exactly the same place in the air. He moved back and forth, and if it was

possible, pushed deeper with each thrust. Her walls clenched around his big dick. After five

minutes of pounding like that, he picked up the pace and fucked her faster, thrusting at

blinding speed, he never stopped, viscously rammed his cock into her pussy. Mikoto's mind

went numb, she went crossed eyed and her tongue lolled out of her mouth.

"Fuck me! I love your fucking huge dick!" Mikoto screamed mindlessly, her giant breasts

bounced absurdly with every thrust. Naruto grinned and moved his hip even faster before

leaning forward, taking her nipple into his mouth

After an hour of lustful filled sex, fucking in the same position, Naruto reached his limit.

With several more powerful thrusts, Naruto buried himself deep inside her womb and came,

filled her up. He came like a hose, and if Mikoto weren't busy cumming her brain out, she

would have noticed that her stomach started expanding rapidly to handle the amount of cum

he dumped inside her.

The moment the both of them had done cumming was the moment Mikoto lost it and blacked

out.

"Phew, I should have held back a little, her body feels so nice," Naruto said as he put Mikoto

down the far spot on his bed, giving her some space to rest. It's probably too much for any

normal human women, but given time, they could all take his cock like any succubus. It's just

that they're not as good, and couldn't last as long.

He turned to the succubae that were waiting eagerly for him to give his order, but before he

could say anything, the door was opened and he heard a sound.

"Woof!" Naruto smiled in amusement when he saw his mothers walking into his chamber on

all four, making a sound like a barking dog. To make it even more exciting for him, the only

clothes fragments she were wearing on her voluptuous body were a pair of fake dog ears on

top of her head, a black collar with her name on it while holding the rope with her mouth.

She also had a fake dog tails with a butt plug that was rammed deep inside her ass.

He couldn't believe she actually did what they joked about that morning.

As Kushina walked toward him in the same manner, the maids started giggling and getting

excited at the sight of their former Queen.

"Hey, what can I say?" Naruto decided to turn to them and questioned with a smirk "She

loves me, alright?" It didn't do anything to stop their giggling, though.

"Woof!" As Kushina climbed onto the bed and started wagging her 'tail' around excitedly,

Naruto grinned and decided to play along with her. He kneeled down on one knee and rubbed

her cheek, neck with his hands, laughing happily as licked his face while swaying her ass side

to side "Woof, woof!" She barked.

"Good girl." Naruto grinned while rubbing her head "You know, I can hardly decide between

a master and a male dog, which role is better." He picked up the rope and smirked "Let's just

be the master now, neh?" he asked and Kushina instantly shot her head forward to lick his

lips "Good, but I would like you to lick this instead." He told her, gesturing to his cock.

Kushina instantly moved her head closer, taking a sniff before licking his cock around the

head "Very good." Naruto then looked up to say to the maids "Can any of you get me a bowl

or something? I think I should properly feed my pet before breeding her."

"Yes, Naruto-sama." One of them immediately walked out of the room to get it.

"The rest of you, come here and play with her." He didn't need to tell them twice. The maids

climbed onto his bed and gathered around him and Kushina. Gigging, they started scratching

her ear, petting her head, shaking hand with her, groping her tits spanking her ass, rubbing

her belly and fingering her pussy... playing with Kushina like she was told.

It was one of his best days yet.

queen

Chapter 12

Succubus Queen

It was yet another day at Uzumaki Mansion, Naruto woke up early in the morning and had

sex with a bunch of maids before heading into the bathroom just to have sex with another

group of succubae while they cleaned his body with their own. Heading to the Dining Hall,

he created a small army of clones to feed the maids while he personally fed his girlfriend

personally. He pumped the greedy princess full of cum before giving her to a group of twenty

clones in exchange for the women they were fucking.

Mira, meanwhile, was cumming continuously at the moment. A lustful smile spread on her

flushed cheeks, and still, the blonde Incubus pounded away at her overwhelmed cunt from

behind, taking her to whole new heights of pleasure that she never knew before with his long,

wrist-thick cock. She dropped her head onto her crossed arms on top of the bed railing,

causing her shapely ass to lift further into the air, causing his big swinging balls to bang

against her stimulated clit.

"Hard! Fuck me hard!" she cried as she tried to shove her hips backwards "Fuck your cock

into me!"

With a determined expression on his face that was void of the usual moaning, Naruto grabbed

her tightly by the hips and shoved forward, burying his cock to the hilt in her steamy cunt.

Mira felt the breath explode from her lungs as his gigantic tool spread the walls of her cunt.

She could feel the muscles of her pussy clamping down as his cock slammed back and forth

inside of her. Naruto drove his cock into her like a jack-hammer, filling her up, and she lost

count of the number of climaxes she was having, because they were coming so fast. She felt

his weight on her back as his hands came around to grab her tits, squeezing them between his

strong fingers, sending electricity shooting through all the quick pounding of Naruto's thick

cock, and the dripping juices of Mira's climaxing cunt, feeling the onset of the biggest orgasm

yet.

The air around them smelled of sex and creaming pussy, and a loud wet sucking sound as he

fucked the living daylights out of her. Mira was crazed with lust as she shoved her hips back

at him, rotating it in circles as she tried to capture more of his cock up her fluttering hole.

"YYYYEEEEESSSSS!" she screamed as the muscles of her pussy clamped down on his

cock. Her body bucked and jerked beneath his as his cock plunged in and out of her quaking

cunt.

Over and over his cock speared into her, he was driving her absolutely wild with desire for

more. Naruto grabbed Mira's elbow and threw one of her arms over his shoulder before

wrapping her legs around his waist, forcing her to bend her back and hanging her on his cock.

In that same position, he stood up and started thrusting his cock into her from underneath,

holding her only by her big tits.

As his cock thrust deep into her erupting pussy, Naruto could feel the sensation of his own

massive orgasm starting to build in his swinging ball and eventually, he came like a broken

hose. Mira cried out as she felt him unloading his seeds into her flooding her insides.

Once he was finish unloading into her Naruto stood up like that for several minutes, enjoying

the sensation of his cum drooling from her impaled cunt and down his muscular thighs.

Naruto no longer held Mira in place when she started absorbing the sperm that had been

emptied inside her womb, so when her grip on his neck faltered, they were nothing but the

tight grip of her pussy to hold her up. She pivoted backwards with her arms flailing until she

was hanging from his dick, and then she slowly slid off of his monstrous meat rod to land

sprawling on the bed.

Half of the morning went on just like that.

Without giving Mira time to catch her breath, Naruto leant down and reached under her body

to roughly grope her large, marshmallow-like breasts, hauling her up until she was once again

hanged in the air. Mauling her fat double-Ds, squeezing them until her nipples jutted out from

between his fingers, grinning in satisfaction as Mira squealed and panted, writhing helplessly

in his grasp as he played with her hypersensitive body.

It was the last day of the second phase of the Chunin Exam, but Kushina said she wasn't

going to come home until much later that night, since they was going to have a preliminaries

test to reduce the amount of Genin that would fight in the third stage of the Chunin Exam,

which would take place a month from then.

Speaking of the Queen of Succubae...

"Hey Mira-chan," He said after dropping Mira to her knees so she could tent his cock "Don't

you think it's about time you introduce me to your mother?"

"?" With his cock in her mouth, Mira looked at him in surprise before pulling back, sucking

all the way "Well, now that you mention it, my mother also wants to meet you too, Naruto-

sama. In my last visit, she told me to bring you to her as soon as possible."

"So why didn't tell me before?"

"Duh, any girls would forget if they're kept getting distracted by this big, in-incubus cock."

Mira poked his cock with her finger while looking at him with half-lifted eyes and a

seductive smile "You fuck my brain out already, so how can I remember my promise to my

mother?" After that, she went back to suck his cock while fondling his balls with her hands.

"Geez, I expect no less from the princess of sluts herself." He chuckled, in between grunts of

pleasure. His hand tangled in her beautiful white locks, dragging her beautiful, flawless face-

up and down his dong "When we're done, take me to your homeland and I will see if I can

give you a sibling or two."

Hearing that, Mira cooed excitedly and sucked his cock even harder than before.

Line Break

Ygvar, was the name of the realm of sex demons, one of the seven capitals of the realm of

mystical beings.

Around the city of lust, shielding it from the wild of the outside realms was a magical barrier

that prevented any outsiders from entering the city without a proper permission from the ones

in charge of security duty themselves, as Ygvar could be called the wildest fantasy of one's

wet dream. The magical barrier also mystically provided the inhabitants of the realm an

endless amount of pheromones that would cause them to feel horny all the time.

The city was divided into three main sectors. The outermost sector served as the living

districts and facilities of all the sex demons and those who earned a home there. Those

included members of various races like vampires, Yukionna, elves, devils and many, many

others...

Deeper into the capital, the next sector was the commercial and economic centre, the place

that earned the land of lust the title of the largest porno industry in the world. Strip clubs,

brothels and all other sexual services one could think of littered the second area of the realm.

And beyond even that, at the very core of the city, laid the royal palace, the home for the

royal succubae family.

It was an extremely large and tall building, and towering over the entire city's other buildings.

Having a very intricately decorated and designed castle, the place appears to consist of a

number of different, yet uniform buildings fused together, with some sections protruding

outwards and assuming particular forms, and the walls being mainly adorned by orders of

large, rectangular windows lined up and flanked by protruding pillars.

From there, Naruto could see it was surrounded by a lush garden, which, much like the rest of

the city, was adorned by a large amount of flowers, possessing flowerbeds and, in addition,

artistically arranged plants and small, tidy hedges, which had square, hollow spaces on their

edges, housing ornately decorated streetlamps, with wavy poles ending in large orbs, with

circular objects surrounding them, seemingly floating. The streets there were adorned with

mosaics, which consisted of a variety of small, flat rectangular stones arranged to resemble

semicircles.

In front of the palace sat a fountain, surrounded by a ground-level, round and shallow pool;

water jets jut upwards from both the fountain and the pool, with the former also housing

some plants, or possibly statues of plants, on its base.

It was truly a magnificent sight to behold. He had heard about it, but the city of lust itself was

nothing like he had imagined.

"This way, Naruto-sama." Mira, who had changed into her succubus form, called out and

gestured him to follow her. Excited, Naruto followed her and entered the city.

As Naruto traveled through the street of Ygvar with Mira, he realized that the only thing that

identified a sex demon and the other species, other than the obvious differences in appearance

and slutty behaviors, was their state of clothing. Like Mira, Succubus wore skimpy and

extremely revealing outfit, shamelessly showing off their voluptuous figure to the others,

while the incubus preferred to walk around shirtless, skintight pants or even no pants at all.

Those who wore no clothes on their body received a lot of cat call from the succubae and

women of other race. Those incubuses had dicks half his size and yet the succubae were

drooling all over the place.

Looking at himself and his state of clothing, Naruto couldn't help but think that he was rather

out of place.

He was an incubus for crying out loud.

"Mira-chan, wait." When he noticed a shop at the other side of the street, he stopped his

girlfriend "Can you give me a second?"

"Oh, of course." Mira nodded and watched Naruto as he crossed the street and entered the

clothing store. She then turned around and walked to a food stall to buy a big, penis-shape

sausage for herself.

As she found a bench to sit down and enjoy her snack, in a very erotic way, the sexy princess

started drawing a lot attention from the opposite sex. Anyone could recognise as the princess

of Succubus Mirajane by her hair colour and voluptuous succubus form, but only a group of

incubus was brave enough to approach her with flirty smiles on their face.

"Good morning, hime-sama." Their leader greeted her with a smile "Fancy..."

"I'm waiting for my man, so fuck off before I castrate you all, tiny dicks." She said simply

before taking half of the sausage-dick into her mouth. The group of incubus paled and

immediately walked away as soon as possible.

Mira didn't have to wait long, though, because about ten minutes later when she was about to

finish her snack, Naruto exited the store with a confident smile on his face.

Mira dropped the stick and what was left of her food down to the ground in shock. It's not

like she hadn't seen anything, but the sight of a shirtless Naruto wearing only a crotch-less

pants was strangely arousing. His soft but impressive cock, his balls, the inner of his

muscular thighs and his ass, were completely exposed without the most important part of his

pants.

"Fuck! What the hell is he?!"

"Is he for real?!"

"Look at the size of that cock? It must be bigger than my arm when hard."

"Mom, I want to fuck him!"

Of course, that was what they said when they saw his huge penis, dangling between his knees

as he walked toward Mira.

"Hey cowboy," Mira snapped out of her daze and smiled at him seductively "Nice clothes.

What can I say? You sure know how to shamelessly draw everyone's attention to you, like a

real incubus." When he was close enough, she took hold of the only cock that had been

penetrating her the past few months.

"Thank you." Naruto grinned and kissed her, sliding his tongue into her mouth.

"Would you like to ride your favourite cow right here?" after a while, Mira pulled back and

asked him with a sultry smile.

"I would love to, but, I guess I will save it for the mother." Naruto grinned and turned her

toward the castle direction "Now, take me to your house, Mira-chan." He slapped her ass,

hard, causing the woman to squeal and giggle perversely.

Naruto and Mira walked into the castle by the ornate front gate, Naruto could see maids

walking around; clad in a variety of revealing outfit much like the maids of his residence,

ready to engage in all forms of debauchery. The floor was formed of a mysterious, silvery

material with a mirror-polish, giving the inhabitants a clear view of the erotic paintings on the

ceiling, as well as the fact that the servants weren't wearing any underwear.

"Hime sama, welcome back!" all the maids that walked pass them stopped for a second to

greet her, bowing their head respectfully to their princess. Naruto could also see taking a

sneak leer at his cock and giggled in excitement while walking away.

"I need to go inform my mother about your presence first, she's probably working in her

office right now." Naruto nodded his head when Mira said that to him "Meanwhile..." she

looked around and randomly picked one of the maids "You."

"Yes, hime-sama." she bowed her head respectfully.

"This man is my mother's honourable guess, inform the others about him. He's the son of my

mother's predecessor, Kushina so you better treat him with the utmost respect, got it?" the

maid nodded her head in understanding, with her eyes widened in surprise "I will see you

later, Naruto-sama." and with that, she brought out her wings and flew away.

"What is your order, master Naruto?" after Mira disappeared from view, the maid turned and

smiled to Naruto.

"Show me the nearest bedroom so I can fuck you." The maid gasped at his order, but giggled

nonetheless.

"Please, this way."

Line Break

"Man... how refreshing..." Naruto said with a satisfied smile on his face as he stretched both

of his arms, bringing his hand above his head before shrinking deeper into the hot water of

the hot spring located at the bathing section of the castle. After spending the entire morning

and half of the afternoon screwing every single maid he came across senseless, Naruto had

decided to retreat into the nearest hot spring to relax his muscles. Though, he couldn't stop

himself from wondering what took Mira so long to come to him with her mother, Eve.

However, he decided not to press it because even if she was a succubus, she was still a queen,

a leader of an entire race. She must have a lot of important works to do.

Mira's mother, Eve, according to the creation myth, was known as the first Succubus. By

copulating with demons, conceiving hundreds more each day, she gave birth to, aka created

an entire race of demons race whose sexual prowess far surpass any others, but had to suck

lifeforce to stay alive herself.

So he and Mira, as well as every single sex demons he had met were related to each other in a

way.

Deep in thought, Naruto didn't realize someone just entered the bathroom. His cock, which

was soft, suddenly stood up and rock hard in barely two seconds, poking out of the water

surface. Even after noticing his painful erection, he didn't realize someone just slip into the

water without making the slightest of sound.

As Naruto tried to calm his raging hard cock down by masturbating while thinking that he

should have brought a couple of succubae with him into the hot spring. A slender arm

suddenly rose from the water and placed its hand on his wrist, stopping him from continuing

jerking himself off. Naruto almost flinched in surprise and almost stood up on his feet, but a

beautiful woman rose from the water from the spot between his legs and slowly crawled her

way up his body stopped him from doing so.

With a pair of golden horns on either side of her head and a tail similar to Mira's tail, she was

a succubus, there was no doubt it. She was stunning, more beautiful than Mira and sexier

than his mother. Her hair was pitch-black that hung down to the midpoint of her back, wet

with the hot water of the hot spring and clung to her face, her long neck and the sexual curve

of her back. She had full blood-red lips and flawless skin. Her body was lithe and toned, her

large supple breasts heaved creating a sort of hypnotic effect as she stared at Naruto with eyes

as dark as the night sky.

She crawled onto his body until they were face to face and her smell filled his nostrils,

turning him on even more. Placing a hand on his chest, she straddled him with her thighs

pressing in on his waist.

"He..." She didn't give him the chance to properly greet her, as she pressed her lips against his

and shared with him a passionate and lustful kiss. Their lips parted shortly after, and their

tongue soon came into play as they wrestled for domination. They swapped saliva, and

Naruto felt his head spin when he gulped hers down his throat.

She was the one who broke the kiss and started to kiss her way down, sucking on his neck,

her hard nipples pressing into his muscular chest. Lifting his hands from the hot water, only

to bring it down under the water once again to grab her firm heart-shape sweet ass, she

moaned like an animal in heat when one of Naruto's hands traveled up her body, rubbing her

smooth and soft skin before grabbing her perfect breast, which was so soft and heavy in his

palm. At that moment, Naruto was aroused to fullest and his raging cock was pressing up in a

rather uncomfortable position between them as she ground her body against it.

Hearing his moan, the black haired woman lowered herself down again while trailing her lips

and tongue on his muscular body until she was lying between his spread legs and his cock

stood like a tall and strong tree trunk in front of her face. Wasting no more time, she grabbed

it around the base and dragged her hot tongue up his long shaft and licked circles around the

head.

Shivers went up and down his spine as she ducked into the water and sucked on my balls

while stroking his cock.

Then much to his surprise, she gorged her mouth on his cock and took it all the way in till her

nose and horns pushed into his stomach and she still slipped her tongue out to lick my sack

some more. She carried on like that; licking and sucking and stroking and moaning onto his

cock while Naruto lost himself in the pleasure she was giving him, grabbing the back of her

head and running his fingers through her hair, pushing her head down slightly to make her go

faster.

Eventually, after half an hour of sucking like that, raising and bringing her head up and down

the water surface, she made Naruto cum and he emptied his load directly into her mouth. The

succubus gulped it down like a pro and didn't waste a single drop, her hands massaged his

balls as he came, hosing him come into her warm mouth, sealed tightly around his cock by

her full lips.

"Delicious," She commented with a dazing smile, licking her lips to have the last taste of his

sperm "and full of life too."

"Yeah, many succubae like you said that kind of got used to it by now." Naruto grinned as he

fondled her right breast, shaping it however he wanted with his palm "So, shall we follow the

basic protocol or you have another treat of my sperm?" he asked, rubbing his cock against her

face. The black haired succubus stood up, walking even closer to him until her pussy was

only a couple of inches away from his lips. He could smell her arousal and licked his lips

when he saw a small drop of love juice, which he could easily identify with the drops of

water that fell from her body, dripping from her pussy.

"It depends on how good you can do with that incubus tongue, young man." She said,

spreading her pussy lips with both hands, showing him the inside of her pussy.

"You're a cocky slut, aren't you?" Naruto asked, snaking his hands behind her and grabbed

her ass with both hands "Most succubae, including your princess Mirajane would just get

down to their knees and beg me to fuck them raw right away."

"Well, to tell you the truth, I'm not most succubae." She put her hand on his head and pushed

his face into her groin, his lips overlapped the lips of her pussy "Now, that cock looks like it

needs to be tented immediately, so you better take a good care of me so I can return the

favour later."

Without further ado, Naruto stared at her pink nether lips for a few moments memorising the

beautiful view before diving in, kissing it and then began thrusting his tongue in and out of

her cunt vigorously. The succubus leant her head back and moaned in pleasure as Naruto ate

her out, "Yes just like that. Eat my pussy just like that." She told him in a sultry tone while

her hands were massaging her breasts to heighten the pleasure, as she knew she was close to

cumming than ever.

Naruto then spread her pussy lips even more and took a long lick causing him to go over her

clitoris, which took the beautiful sex demon over the edge and she moaned out loudly when

she came and spilled her cum on Naruto's face as he continued eating her out and drinking

her delicious juice directly from her pussy.

When she was done, Naruto looked up from his position near her crouch his face glistening

with her juices, grinning when he saw her flushed face.

"Ten out of..." But she didn't have the chance to finish her sentence, as Naruto moved with

the speed he was so famous for and got behind her. He thrust his knee to the behind of her

knee and grabbed the back of her neck, pushing her down until she was bent over at the edge

of the lake and her ass stuck into the air.

"Time to put you into your proper place, slut." He said and spanked her ass hard. With his

superior strength, he kept her in place and started rubbing his cock against the crack of her

bubble ass. Grabbing his cock around the base, Naruto pulled his hip back and positioned the

bulbous head of his cock at the entrance of her pussy.

Naruto wasted no time, planting his palms on her tits and slammed into her as hard as he

could, sliding his entire cock into her cunt. Naruto could feel the tip of his cock hit the back

of her pussy wall hard and her climax was instantaneous, her walls clenching around his

meaty shaft hard.

"Haah, you really don't waste any time, do you?!"

Instead of answering her question, Naruto pulled his long fat cock nearly out of her trembling

vagina before sliding it back in, slowly so he could feel every corner of her cunt first.

Slowly, the pace picked up and the thrusting became harder as he thrust deeper and deeper

into her cunt. Grabbing her ass cheeks, he started to fuck her with long strokes that used the

full length of his over a foot long cock. Driving in and out of her, thrusting deep into her

juicing cunt, sending her over the top with almost every thrust, he fucked so hard that water

splashed violently around him with each of his movement. The two of them stayed like that

for over an hour. She was delirious from the endless climaxes, and almost insane with the

intense pleasure that he had brought to her that seemed to have no end.

Naruto got into a much faster pace, his hips becoming a blur as he assaulted the succubus

woman's soaking passage, her walls rippling and pulsating in time with his thrusts, cumming

and squirting juice out with every thrust of his cock. It's just something about that succubus

that was driving him crazy with lust, and soon Naruto found himself fucking the black haired

succubus with the strength and speed he had never used before in his life.

Giving one final thrust of his hip, Naruto cried out in pleasure and slammed his cock into her

womb, then painted it white with his sperm. Several minutes later, the feeling of her cunt

constantly milking his cock was too much for him to handle, his mouth hung open in a silent

scream and his eyes rolled upward. The succubus was pretty much in the same situation as

her male counterpart.

Naruto grabbed her shoulders and was about to start all over when suddenly the door of the

bathroom was kicked open and a very naked Mira enter with a huge smile on her face.

"Naruto-sama! I have come back to you! Let's have a heat hot spring sex together!" She

exclaimed cheerfully before looking around in search for him, but her smile disappeared right

after the moment she saw the succubus he was fucking "Kaa-sama?!" She gasped in surprise.

"Kaa...sama!?" Naruto repeated the world before widening his eyes in realisation.

The woman he was having his cock deep inside Eve, Mira's mother.

sexy mikoto

As soon as Kushina found out that her son had gone to Ygvar with his girlfriend to meet his

future in mother in law for the first time, she couldn't stop herself from getting there as fast as

possible. She knew what was about to happen at the city of sex demons and she wanted to be

a part of it.

When she arrived at the throne room of Ygvar Palace, what she found was not unexpected;

sitting on the throne for the Queen was her son Naruto Uzumaki. He was completely naked at

the moment, his back leaned against the huge chair, his trademark grin plastered on his face

with closed eyes serenely, enjoying the pleasurable service of his girlfriend and her mother,

who were kneeling between his spread legs, both of them were working over his cock as if

they were worshipping their god with lips and tongues. Like him, they were both naked; their

alluring, voluptuous bodies were gleaming with sweats as they pleasured Naruto, their tongue

ran on the length of his cock as they trailed soft and lustful kisses on both sides, working

stimulatingly much to the enjoyment of the young Incubus. His cock twitched and throbbed

as two of the sexiest, sluttiest women alive serviced his cock before stopping at the head,

where they smashed their lips into each other and made out with the tip in between.

Naruto had to bite back a moan when the tongues of two succubae swirled around every

corner of his cock. It felt so good that he could cum just right there.

Standing in the middle of the throne room, Kushina could also have the full view of the usual

'what would happen if there's an Incubus with a big fucking dick and the power to create a

whole army of himself. The maids who served as Eve's servants were currently being fucked

by his clones in numerous positions all over the place. Their eyes rolled back, their tongues

hung out and there was drool coming from the corners of their mouth, as their insides were

stretched by the massive cocks of his clones and permanently reshaped.

Grinning and smiling sadistically, with the skills of a succubus, Kushina made her way

through the orgy without getting noticed by anyone, her sons and their toys alike. It was

rather unnecessary because they were all too lost in their own lust to even notice their former

Queen. It didn't take her long to get to Naruto, and when she did, Kushina immediately

stripped down to her birth suit and kneeled down between Even and Mira before giving his

huge, bloated balls-sack a loving, submissive kiss.

Naruto's eyes snapped wide open when he felt a third pair of lips on his cock. Leaned down,

he widened his eyes when he saw his mother smiling at him while making the peace signs

with both of her hands. It didn't take the mother and daughter succubi to notice Kushina as

well.

"Kushina." Eve released his cock and let her daughter take care of it. Meanwhile, Naruto

simply leaned back and enjoyed his girlfriend's mind-blowing blowjob, "Finally, after all

these years, you have finally returned, my daughter." The black haired Queen leaned forward

and kissed her successor on the lips. Eve was a very special demon.

"Eve-sama." Kushina moaned into the kiss "It's been awhile." The two continued to make out

until their need for oxygen forced them to separate "I see that you have personally

experienced my son's sexual prowess. He's quite amazing, isn't he?"

"He is as strong as you are and as horny as I was during my prime time." Eve smiled

"Overall, they make him the perfect sex demon. You're quite lucky to have an amazing man

like this all for yourself, Kushina."

"Ara, I get that a lot, kind of get used to it by now." Kushina giggled and leaned forward to

take his cock from Mira's mouth "Um..." she hummed a soft tune as she bobbed her head on

his cock while swirling her tongue around the width of his cock. The three of them took turn

sucking, licking and kissing his cock eagerly as if it was the most delicious treat, which to

them it was. Naruto could no longer think clearly as his mother sank her head down on his

cock, forcing Mira to join her mother sucking on his balls. After deepthroating him with no

problem like usual, her tongue snaked out to join theirs as she hummed around him. His

hands moved to the side of her head and guided her up and down as quickly as he could

without thrusting and taking his balls out of the other girls' mouths.

Minutes later he pulled out and showered the three women's faces with his thick cum.

"If you ask me, I say that Mira is the one remind me the most of your old your old self, Eve-

sama." Kushina and Eve giggled when Mira instantly attacked their face, lapping up the

sperm covering their bodies while Naruto kept showering them with his delicious cum. "She

will make a fine wife for my son, obviously."

"Ara, already?" Eve gasped in slight surprise while Mira was sucking on her tits. Her hand,

meanwhile, was stroking Naruto's lurching cock "I thought you would want to keep him for

yourself Kushina."

"Of course, but I have learnt a long time ago that I'm not capable of handling him alone. Plus,

it's for my son's benefit as well. Marrying Mira, your heir, means that he will become the

King of sex demons. Maybe it's time for us to have a king, don't you think?" Eve smiled at

the idea and nodded her head in agreement.

The next morning, Naruto was in shock when he looked at the two babes wrapped securely in

blankets in Eve and Mira's arms.

"These are my gifts to you, Naruto." Eve said as she gave the girl in her arms to Kushina,

who was trying her best not to laugh at the face her son was making "They are your

daughters."

The blond mentally slapped himself.

How could he forget such an important detail about Eve?

Mira's mother is a very unique succubus. Much like her older sister, Lilith, the mother of all

devils, Eve can get pregnant and give birth to her children in a single day. Not only that, but

every child she gives birth to, their basic appearances as well as their species will be decided

by the fathers. She copulates with a human, then her son or daughter with him will be entirely

human, without a single drop of demon blood in their veins. She's impregnated by an

inuyoukai then her children will be dog Youkai and have their father's facial appearances.

This also explained why he couldn't recognize her when they met for the first time, because

she looked nothing like Mira, whose father must be an incubus and had white hair and blue

eyes.

Did he actually manage to knock up the queen of sex demons? Getting his mother pregnant

was something that he had been trying to do for years, because he had always wanted her to

give birth to his siblings/children, but for some unknown reasons, he had never been able to

do that and yet with Eve... More importantly, because he was incubus... didn't it make his

daughters succubae?

"But... but..." Naruto asked in shock and disbelief "When did you go into labor?"

"Earlier this morning, when you were still sleeping on my bed." Eve answered with a smile

"Kushina and Mira helped me deliver them, so, as you can see, she's not surprised like Mira."

The white haired succubi were still playing with the girl in her arms, gently tickling her with

the tip of her finger

"But you guys could at least wake me up and inform me about them... I don't know... so I can

prepare..." Naruto looked at his daughters. They were twin, identical in appearances.

"Ara, sorry about that, maybe I should wake you up, but you were tired and needed a stable

mental to handle this new, so we let you sleep." Eve winked playfully "Anyway, their names

are for you to choose, I won't question you about that."

"They are so cute, aren't you Naruto-sama?!" Mira giggled excitedly and showed him the girl

in her arms "This is the older sister."

"And this little one is the younger." Kushina smiled. She sounded really happy as well. After

all, it was her granddaughter she was holding in her arms.

"I see... so what should I name them then?" Naruto went deep in thought, but before he could

come up with anything, Eve placed a hand on his cheek and kissed him softly on his lips.

Moment later, she pulled back and smiled brightly, placing a finger on her lips before saying.

"Take good care of them for me, Naruto. Because of my work, I will leave them in your

hands. But don't worry, I will try to make some times and come to visit them. I don't have

many children these days, so those two are very special to me."

Naruto could only nod his head, because why should he not. They were his daughters, as

their father, it's his duty and responsibility to take care and protect them.

Little did he know that in two weeks time, the job as the father of two succubi would become

extremely difficult.

twin incubus

Chapter 13

Twin Succubi

If Kushina Uzumaki could fuck her own son without a care in the world, then said son,

Naruto Uzumaki could also fuck his own daughter without feeling anything but pleasure.

Yes, you heard that right, and it should also be mentioned once again that incest was

completely normal for sex demons. There was no barrier between them and their sexual

experience, their meals. A son could normally bend his succubus mother down and process to

jump her and use her to satisfy his boner while feeling nothing wrong about it. A father could

have his way with his daughter and yet no one would question about it, simply because they

were incubus and succubus, who had no shame and was absolute perverts in nature.

It wasn't even seven in the morning and Naruto had already found his inside his daughter's

room again, and much to his amusement, she was also expecting him. As soon as the door

was closed behind them, the older sister of the twin, Evelyn Uzumaki threw herself at her

father, crashing her mouth onto his and instantly having her tongue come into play. Her

hands, instead of wrapping around his neck like a normal woman would while kissing their

lover, snaked down his muscular body and delve into his pants to take hold of his cock, the

very same cock that had impregnated her mother and caused Eve, the Queen of Succubus, to

sire her and her sister.

To put it bluntly, Evelyn and her twin, young sister were like a pair of wet dreams come true.

With large, baby blue eyes and beautiful face that was framed by the bangs of her golden

blonde hair, which extended down to the small point of her back, Evelyn had the innocent,

angelic beauty of a royal princess. However, as a contrast to her angel-like beauty, as a sinful

Succubus, her body could only be described an impossibly voluptuous. Standing at the height

of five foot seven, Evelyn owned a pair of solid E-cup breasts that stood high and firm on her

chest without the slightest sag despite being as soft as marshmallows, small waist, tone

feminine stomach, and wide hips with a big, big, perky perfectly shaped ass that he could

spend hours spanking, despite the fact that she was a somewhat well-behaved girl.

Her usual outfit didn't do much to hide her incredible busty body either. Evelyn's clothes

consisted of a bright dark purple tank top that stopped just a few inches below her breast,

exposing her midriff and much of her stomach while hugging the curves of her giant breasts,

leaving little to the imagination. She wore jeans shorts with a brown belt loosely hanging

around her hips and finished her outfit with thigh-high black stockings.

Though currently, the blonde succubus was wearing a rather revealing sleepwear, consisting

of a lace thong and a matching colour, completely transparent nightgown that went down just

above her ass and split at the middle, leaving nothing to the imagination.

It'd only been two weeks and yet Evelyn had already matured enough to be mistaken as his

biological sisters instead of daughters. Naruto didn't understand how they could grow so fast,

but according to Mira and his mother, it had something to do with Eve's unique physique and

his highly potent sperm. Naruto didn't dig too deep into that matter, though.

Separating their mouths, causing the succubus to groan in disappointment at the loss of her

father's skilled tongue, Naruto grabbed her shoulders and turned her around before wrapping

his right arm around her chest, filling the palm of his hand with her big tit and pulling her

close to his chest. Grinning perversely, Naruto snaked his hand down her body, tracing circles

around her belly before going down even lower.

Evelyn moaned and gasped excitedly when Naruto's hand rubbed her pussy through the silky

fabric of her thong while stimulatingly groping her breast, treating her body as if it was his

plaything, which turned her on and excited her to no end. Eventually, his fingers went under

her thong, and Naruto immediately went to work on her pussy by inserting two fingers into

her fold, causing Evelyn to arch her back and moan in delight.

"Good morning, Daddy." She finally spoke, her sweet voice had always been a great

resemble of her mother "Did you have a good sleep last night?" Obviously, she had already

known the answer. He had always had his mother, girlfriend and at least five or six maids

ready for him on his bed every time he went to his bedroom. With them around, there was

absolutely no way that he would have a full sleep.

"You know, the usual," Naruto answered simply. Evelyn was no stranger to his sex life, even

before she started taking a part in it "So, what do you have in mind today?" he asked

squeezed her breast before reaching into her nightgown for her nipple, causing the gold

haired succubus to moan in delight.

"Anything?"

"Anything for my beautiful girl."

"Then I want you to bend me down and fuck me hard, long, and deep with that huge cock of

yours until you stuff me with enough cum to make me look pregnant." She said with an

innocently. Her hands miraculously worked his pants down to his ankles, freeing his cock

from its prison. It was the natural skill all female sex demons have. "After my poor womb

cannot take it anymore, I want you to pour it all on my face, then summon as many clones as

possible and have them ganged up on me." She turned around to face him and put a hand on

his chest, the other continued to run on the impressive length of his cock "How does that

sound, Daddy?" She asked, reaching her hand under his shirt and lift it over his head, with

her father raising his arms to help her.

"I don't know Evelyn. You ask a lot, and you know that your mother doesn't want me to spoil

you." Evelyn simply took a step back, reaching for the strap of her nightgown and slid it

down her shoulder. In a second, her sleepwear fell to her ankles and she kicked it away

without hesitation. Standing only in her tiny thong, Evelyn put her hands on her hips, striking

a sexy pose while smiling seductively at her father, whose cock twitched and throbbed at the

sight of her extreme erotic body.

It should also be said that Evelyn was named after her mother, the succubus, who in her early

day, was the sluttiest woman in existence and history. It was Mira who chose that name for

her, and why was she slowly turning out just like her mother, Naruto had no idea.

Naruto loved his daughter a lot, so he would rather fuck her himself, rather than giving her to

any guy out there. It was quite fortunate that Evelyn was more than satisfied with her father,

who was a one-man army himself and as sex crazed as she was.

"Stripping right in front of me so casually like that, you really want to get fucked by your

father that much?" Naruto asked, deciding not to give in to her generous plan "Alright then,

Evelyn, get down on your knees and show me how much you want it," Naruto ordered firmly

and crossed his arms on his chest "then I will consider giving you just exactly what you want,

you spoiled slut." Just as he had expected, Evelyn squealed out in delight and did what she

was told, getting down to her knees in front of him and bringing out her tongue to lick his

cock, like a dog licking its master before inhaling as much of his cock into her mouth as

possible "Fuck, eager, aren't you?" Naruto asked as she began to bob her head back and forth

on his cock, taking more down her throat with every time "You must really want your daddy

to fuck you, do you, Evelyn?" He asked as his daughter pulled her head back, revealing his

stiff cock which was coated in her spit, with droplets of saliva falling to the ground "Go on,

do your best then, I'm considering it right now."

"I'm a bit thirsty right now, so feel free to blow your load anytime you want, neh?" she asked

innocently, and Naruto, with a sly smirk, willed his cock to blast a massive shot of pre-cum

onto her face.

"Like that?"

"Yes yes, just like that." She said, licking her lips, taking some of the cum on her face into her

mouth "So delicious." She moaned, cooing excitedly while giggling delightfully. Smirking,

Naruto gave her another blast of pre-cum, which, however, flew straight into her mouth,

nearly filling it up "Mou, daddy is such a meanie!" She pouted, her tongue used to savour the

taste of his cum. When she tasted it for the first time, Evelyn felt light-head and experienced

the most wonderful feelings in the world when her father's rich liquor slowly trickled down

her throat. Even her mother couldn't deny the taste of his cum, and would randomly drop her

work to go to him. Occasionally, she would catch them having sex in his room, and her

mother in action was indeed the most beautiful thing to watch.

Her father, meanwhile, turned her on to no end.

"Thought you're thirsty." He said casually. Evelyn gulped the sperm in her mouth down

before going back to suck his cock, having her mouth and throat stretched to the limit just to

take his fore-arm thick cock in. Naruto reached out and cupped the back of her head, his hand

wrapping itself in her wimple. Slowly he pushed her forward, forcing another inch or so of

his cock into her mouth, before he pulled her back, allowing Evelyn to drag her tongue on his

cock along the way. As her mouth filled with saliva, Evelyn began sucking and slurping

while letting her father guide her head on his cock, clear lines of spit running from her lips,

down his huge shaft.

She kept going and going like that until her nose bumped into the base of his shaft, holding

herself there, working her throat along with his big, veined length. Evelyn reared back quick,

but she swallowed his entire cock for the second time quicker. She then repeated the process

over and over, taking short, but more than enough, breaths as she deepthroated her father

cock over and over.

"Fuck. That's right baby, suck that cock." Naruto said as he thrust his hip in rhyme with her

face, loudly slapping his balls onto her chin while listening to the music her throat was

making as she spat thick streams of saliva on her father's mighty cock. She came up once or

twice for air, but as quick as a blink of an eye, his cock was crammed down her throat, his

pre-cum coated with her saliva running over her chin.

Eventually, his daughter's effort to impress him became too much for him to handle. Without

warning, his cock lurched in Evelyn's mouth and a huge spurt of cum shot from the head,

travelling straight down her throat. Another spurt followed, as heavy and full as the first, then

another and a fourth then a fifth... a nearly endless stream of cum was being unloaded down

her throat, and Evelyn could only say that she loved every moment of it. She felt her pussy

twitch and spasm as her first orgasm rippled through her body, triggered simply by having

him fill her up with his cum.

Yep, her father just had that power over her. Not just because he was a talented incubus with

a long and big dick, Naruto was also a superior demon. By mere standard alone, he could

make her wet her panty with juice with a slight burst of power.

"Make sure to clean it carefully," Naruto said as his daughter worked her tongue around his

cock "because it's going to go up your cunt next." Giggling excitedly at the thought, the

young succubus did what she was told, carefully using her tongue to lick his cock clean.

Standing up, Evelyn turned around and grabbed the waistband of her thong. Bending her

back and sticking her ass toward his cock, Evelyn removed the tiny piece of garment from

her body, leaving her and her private completely naked to his eyes.

Putting her thong on his standing cock, Evelyn tiptoed and kissed him on his lips for a second

before walking around him, walking toward the bed. Naruto turned around, his eyes glued to

her perfect ass as it swayed and jiggled slightly with each step she took.

Quickly climbing onto the bed, Evelyn turned around and lied on her side. She raised a leg,

putting her better-than-perfect pussy on lewd display.

"Can't help yourself anymore, can you?" She giggled eagerly when, in a flash, her father was

on top of her, his cock threatening to spear into her pussy "After all that daddy talk about

spoiling your daughter, you're no more than a horny incubus with a slutty daughter, am I

right?" she asked and was about to tease him more, but Naruto effectively silenced her by

plunging half of his monster cock into her cunt. Pulling his hip back, Naruto immediately

thrust forward, thunderously slapping his crotch against her labia. His cock pushed through

her cervix, and the giant bulge of his dick became visible pushing up her abdomen.

"Oh YES!" She screamed, entering a state of perpetual orgasm, much like how Eve would

whenever they had sex "Oh yes daddy FUCK! FUCK ME, FUCK YOUR FUCKING

DAUGHTER! OH YESSSSS!"

"Damn, I love this pussy so much!" Naruto grinned lecherously as he slammed his cock into

her over and over with increasing urgency, rapidly pushing through her cervix and fucking

her womb.

For an hour straight, he fucked her like that, never stopping a second to rest, never giving his

daughter enough time to catch her breath and cool down from her orgasm. They said the

expression of a young succubus being fucked stupid was the most beautiful, and Naruto had

never found that statement truer when he looked at his daughter's ahegao smile.

Overwhelmed by the pleasure, with a loud grunt Naruto started to hose into Evelyn's womb

with cum, spraying her inside with a nearly endless amount of cum. By the time he was done

cumming, Evelyn was actually starting to look a couple months pregnant, just like how she

wished. Finally, Naruto stopped pumping sperm into his beautiful daughter and leant forward

to kiss the fucked stupid girl's lips.

It took her minutes, but eventually, Evelyn was able to return to her right mind and when that

happened, she found her father sitting on her body, thrusting his cock between her large tits

which he pressed around his cock with his hands.

"Hm... so my princess has finally up huh?" Naruto smirked and looked at Evelyn when he felt

her tongue against his cock "Up for the next big challenge?"

"Yes, please." Evelyn smiled as she winked at him. She had never had her father and his

clones gangbanged her at the same time before, but seeing her grandmother and half-sister

being surrounded by identical men with erected monster cocks, she couldn't stop herself from

feeling extremely turned on at the sight, as well as imagining herself in their place. A few

days ago, she was still not matured enough to take on more than two cocks at the same time,

but now, she was sure that she could survive an assault of a large group of fathers.

Still, there was no guarantee for her mind, though.

"Onee-sama!"

However, before he could even cross his fingers and made the hand seal to summon the

clones, the doors of Evelyn's room was pushed open and entered the girl who, pretty much,

had the same facial appearance as the succubus lying underneath him, but had her long,

straight hair styled in the traditional hime-cut. She was wearing a short black and red kimono

that went down to her mid-thighs, with a black obi around her torso keeping her clothes

together. She also wore a skin-tight, dark green shorts, and black Shinobi sandals

"Evelyn, Kaa-sama is here to see..." But immediately she stopped dead on her track when she

saw her father and sister on the bed, naked together. It didn't take long for her brain to process

the information, and she had her eyes closed and her body shook with anger "Tou-sama..."

She raised her fist while muttering murderously.

"Wait for Kaguya-chan, we have already told you, this is normal..."

"HENTAI!" Kaguya cried. She grabbed everything within her arms reach and threw them at

him. Naruto and Evelyn were forced to dodge because as soon as there was nothing left for

her to throw, she reached for her weapons.

Much like Evelyn who was named after the mother of all succubi, also her mother Eve,

Kaguya was named after the mother of Rikudo Sennin, the creator of the Shinobi world.

Eve's unique physique allows her to give birth to children who would take after their fathers.

Because he was half sex demo, half human, Naruto and everyone believed his daughters were

like him too.

However, it didn't take them long to realise they were wrong.

If Evelyn was the very embodiment of her father's sex demon side, a succubus who wouldn't

mind having her father fucked her senseless because he was hot, and had a big dick to boost,

then Kaguya was the incarnation of his human side, a young woman who had moral codes as

well as common senses.

It should be pointed out that while her sister lost it to her father as soon as she hit her puberty,

Kaguya Uzumaki was still a virgin.

Line Break

"Good morning, Naruto!" Eve greeted him cheerfully when Naruto, fully clothed, walked

into the kitchen with his twin daughters following closely behind him. However, before she

could greet her daughters, she noticed a cut on Evelyn's forehead and had her eyes widened

in concern "Evelyn, what happened to you?" she rushed to her daughter's side and put her

hands on her head to have a closer look at the cut.

"Good morning, kaa-chan." Naruto greeted his mother, who was cooking a normal looking

breakfast with Eve and Mira, with a kiss, which she happily returned "You too, Mira." He

chuckled at his girlfriend who was already presenting her mouth and tongue to him. Grabbing

her ass, the blond pushed her over the counter and crashed his lips against hers, kissing her

passionately.

"Eventful morning for you, isn't it?" Kushina asked her son with a sly giggle, while Naruto

could only shrug in reply.

"Who did this to you?" Eve asked, looking at her daughter.

"She did!" Evelyn pointed her hand to Kaguya "I was having so much fun with daddy and

she came in and ruined it." It didn't take the queen long to realise what she meant by that.

"Kaguya, just how many times do I have to tell you that incest is normal and allowed in our

society?" Eve crossed her arms over her chest and gave her other daughter a stern look

"When you're a sex demon, it's either you have sex or you don't. It really doesn't matter with

whom."

"But I'm not a succubus." Kaguya made a comeback with a pout. She then looked at her

sister, who stuck her tongue out at her.

"Yes, you are." Eve placed a hand on her daughter's shoulder "Your father is incubus, and

your twin sister and I are a succubus. Even if you cannot take after me, you are a succubus

too. It's just that you have delayed puberty, that's all. It's not that uncommon for Hanyou

Succubi to be late bloomers."

"I don't think so."

"Well, whatever you say then." Eve shook her head while giggling "Sooner or later, puberty

will hit you, hard, and when that happen, you will feel so horny you can't think straight. I

suggest that you go to your father. A sex demon's first time is very special, but a first time

with an incubus like him makes it even better, but because we both have agreed that no

incubus, noble or have a bigger dick than him, is good enough to be with our daughter, your

father will be the one who take your virginity. Of course after that you're free to decide who

you want to be with, we will respect your decision regardless what it going to be." She turned

around, looked at Naruto, whose hand was under his girlfriend's skirt and fingering her pussy.

Giving a sexy wink, Eve asked him "You will definitely be there for her in her crisis time of

need, won't you, dear?"

"Oh... of course." Naruto grinned broadly. Evelyn's first time was one of the best sexes he had

ever had, so if Kaguya, her twin, was anything like her sister, then Naruto would definitely

look forward to it.

"C-can we drop this matter already?" Kaguya stuttered while blushing in embarrassment.

How could Naruto say it so casually like that? He was her father for god's sake "A-anyway,

what do we have for breakfast? Is there anything I can help you with Obaa-chan, Kaa-chan?

Can I join you?"

"Of course, since our best cook is currently keeping her boyfriend companied, of course you

can Kaguya-chan?" Kushina smiled before turning to Naruto, saying rather sternly "And you

young man, outside now. This is a serious cooking section, and we all don't want to ruin our

breakfast, especially when the Queen is here."

"We will call you when breakfast is ready."

"Alright then." Naruto nodded his head and picked Mira up, throwing her on his shoulder

before walking out of the kitchen.

Line Break

"Fuck, where did you find these girls?" Kneeling on the floor, Naruto asked as he moved his

hips back and fore, fucking his new maids' extremely tight pussy from behind with reckless

abandon. After a moment, Naruto pulled his cock out, giving the girl a few seconds to catch

her breath, and plunged his cock into another succubus who was lying underneath her in the

sixty-nine manner's throat, groaning throatily in pleasure as she started sucking on his cock

like a strong vacuum.

After breakfast was over, as Mira and her half-sisters headed to the residence's backyard to

train in magic, Naruto took his mother and Eve to the outdoor pool on the second floor.

Before they arrived, Eve had given her lover a couple of maids, who had accompanied her to

his house, to play with. These maids were, of course, succubi, so they were deadly beautiful

and incredible voluptuous, not to mention that extremely talented in the art of sex, much like

any gifts the Queen had given him during her visits in the past two weeks.

"They're two of the finest maids at my palace." Sitting on a lounger not too far away from

him, wearing a one piece bikini that left her back and the side of her breasts and hips bare, the

Queen of Succubi Eve answered with a smile "They volunteered to be given to you when I

asked them, apparently, your latest visit is still having quite an impact on the girls at my

palace." She continued, leaning back and making herself comfortable between two of

Naruto's clones, who were just as naked as the original was. Sighing longingly in satisfaction

as she stroked their cocks while they were playing with her boobs, Evelyn opened her legs

even further, giving the clone that were having his face buried in her crotch even more access

to her pussy. On the lounger beside her, Kushina was also being served by her son's clones

with the only differences being one of them was fucking her face relentlessly while the other

two were sucking on her nipples, their hands stimulatingly fingering her pussy.

The benefit of having a lover who could duplicate himself, they would never have to go out

with multi guys at the same time to have a threesome, orgy or even a gangbang with them

being the main interest.

"So I can add them to my place?"

"Of course you can honey. You just have to make sure to keep the girls who live here healthy,

I will handle the rest."

"That I can do." Naruto grinned before thrusting his cock as far away as possible into the

maid's pussy and cumming, filling her up with his sperm. Three delicious meals per day and

maybe, if lucky, a quickie were the payments for their service. After all, with his stamina, and

shadow clones, he could take care of the entire city full of succubi without any problem, let

alone a couple hundreds of them.

"Oh god..." Kushina moaned dreamily as the clone removed his cock from her throat and

stepped to the side "That was one hell of a treat, thank you dear." She gave the tip of his cock

a kiss before throwing her head back and groaning loudly in pleasure when she reached her

limit and came, squirting her juice all over the clones' hands. Smiling blissfully, Kushina

wrapped her arms around their necks and turned her head to kiss the one on her right,

entangling her tongue with him for a minute before giving the other one the same treatment.

"Well, that being said, there's something I want to ask you honey." Eve said as she turned

back to Naruto, who had taken his seat and let the maids take care of his member "Are you

free next Friday?"

"Yes, I am." Naruto answered back. The chunin exam was still going, so he was free from

Shinobi duties for the next few weeks "What for?"

"I'm going to throw a party at my palace next week. I want you to come so I can introduce

you to the leaders of their Factions. You are the son of the former Queen of Succubi, one of

the few incubuses with high status, not to mention that you're going out with my eldest

daughter, who have been chosen to be the future Queen. If you choose to have a serious

relationship with Mira later on, you might as well become her husband, making you the first

king of sex demons in the future, so of course the higher-ups will want to meet you."

"Is that so?" Naruto said before nodding his head "Alright then, I will make sure to be there."

"And also remember to bring your date." She then quickly continued before Naruto could say

anything "As much as I want to, unfortunately, I cannot be your date. I'm the organizer of the

party. I have a lot businesses to take care of so I cannot stay around to keep you company."

She then looked at Kushina, who were moaning like a real slut while being double penetrated

by the clones "Kushina, on the other hand, is your mother. While it's perfectly normal for us,

many will look at you weirdly if you bring your biological mother to the party and start

having intimating interactions with her. I know that we sex demons have no shame and really

don't care about others' opinions, but doing something like that won't leave a good

impression."

"Well, I will ask Mira then." Naruto said "Can Evelyn and Kaguya come too?"

"Of course, they are my daughters so they can be there. It's also a good opportunity to

introduce them to the other world."

"Alright then." Naruto nodded before asking "Speaking about Kaguya, are you sure that she

is a succubus? I mean... Evelyn has started maturing since she was twelve, and yet her sister

hasn't made any process. Maybe it's because I am a half human half sex demon, Evelyn and

Kaguya are succubus and human separately?"

"You don't have to worry about that, honey. Kaguya will mature soon enough. She might be a

good, well mannered girl, but when she starts feeling horny, she sure will start behaving like

her elder sister, always clinging to her father's big dick." They both laughed at that "It has

happened before. While they might mature very fast, many of my children with half-breeds in

the past had taken a very long time to fully develop. It might take weeks, months or even

years for them to start having the traits similar to their fathers. Even Evelyn will take a lot of

time to physically grow into a fine succubus like her sister, Mira."

"Damn, can't wait for that to happen. It's not like I really, really want to fuck her or

anything..." Eve giggled "I mean... maybe I want to fuck her, but that's not what I mean. It's

just that she has been bothering me and Evelyn ever since she found out we're having sex.

She has a very bad habit of walking in at a very right time, you know."

"She will have to accept it soon enough, so don't worry." Eve smiled. Beside her, Kushina fell

down to her lounger when the clones disappeared after cumming inside her holes.

"I really hope so." Naruto nodded and stood up from his seat. Pulling the maids with him by

their breasts, Naruto approached Eve and said to his clones "You three have fun with these

two, I want to fuck her." Saying that, he pushed the giddy girls to the clones, who caught

them in their arms.

"Aye, boss." With that, they left to the other side of the pool.

"Alright slut, open that mouth of yours and start working on this cock." He turned to Eve and

stated demandingly, causing the Queen of succubi to moan and lean forward. When she put

her hands on his thighs, Naruto quickly grabbed them by the wrists and trapped them together

on the top of her head, smirking down at her as he pushed his cock against her face.

Obediently, Eve opened her mouth, and Naruto didn't waste any time to thrust his cock in.

Line Break

"That's the Hokage Monument, but you two have already known that." Naruto said as he

pointed his hand at the mountain that had all face of the Hokage carved into the stone "The

tower over there is the Hokage Residence, where the Hokage office is, and this building is the

Ninja Academy, where kids train to become ninja."

"Oh..." Evelyn and Kaguya nodded their heads at the same time. Naruto was currently

bringing them with him for a tour around the village. Because of their quick aging condition,

the twin rarely left the main residence, and even when they left Uzumaki land, they didn't

have much time to enjoy the sightseeing.

However, after their mother had run a few magical checks on them, making sure that they

wouldn't change much physically, she had decided that it's time for Naruto to introduce them

to the human world. The twin was very excited for this trip, Evelyn more than Kaguya, but

that was not anything new. Of course, they had to fake their identity, because it would have to

answer a lot of questions if someone found out he had daughters that were almost as old as he

was. After a short discussion, they had all agreed to make Evelyn and Kaguya his father's

relatives from a distance lineage, which was very convincing because of their hair color.

"C'mon, let me show you guys around the village. There're still many things to see." He said,

gesturing for them to follow him. Listening to her father's wish, Evelyn had dressed up

formally to make herself look a little less slutty than usual, so she wasn't drawing as much

lustful attention from the opposite sex as she used to be.

"Yes, tou-sama/daddy."

They both said, just loud enough for him to hear and quickly followed their father as he led

the around the village, showing them every corner of Konoha and answering every question

they had for him. He showed them the training grounds, the forbidden forest, the Shinobi

stores, and even places like his old house and the brothels at Redlight District, the places that

he had visited a lot when he was younger and Kushina wasn't around to take care of her son,

much to Evelyn's enjoyment and Kaguya's disgust. They left the Redlight District a moment

later.

When they walked into the park, Naruto brought for each of them an ice cream cone, much to

their delight. Kaguya thanked him with a kiss to the cheek, but Evelyn captured his mouth

and tongue in a searing kiss as soon as she was sure no one was looking. After that, Naruto

started telling them many stories of his Shinobi life and adventures, all of them brought

excitement to no end, and made them see their father in a new light. He was an incubus, a

very horny one, but he was also an amazing Shinobi, one that they hoped to become one day.

The father and daughters trio later headed to Ichiraku ramen to have lunch and left shortly

after they had nearly eaten everything. The love for ramen sure ran in the family.

"Ah, here we go." Naruto said as he stopped in front of a certain flower shop "This place is

Yamanaka flower shop, owned by Misaki Yamanaka. You girls know her."

"Yes we know her." Evelyn nodded her head with a sly smile "After all, I heard from

Kushina-obaa chan she was the one who had whored herself to you unconditionally, despite

having a husband and a daughter." Naruto chuckled sheepishly while scratching the back of

his head, while Kaguya shook her head and shrugged her shoulders in disappointment. She

had heard about that too, so she wasn't surprised.

"All the better, right?" Naruto asked before opening the door "Come on in, I will buy for you

two some flowers." Nodding their heads, the two followed their father. When they were

inside, Evelyn and Kaguya were amazed by the amount and the beauty of the flowers.

Between the two, Evelyn wasn't exactly the girly type girl who spent hours picking flowers,

so she didn't like them as much as her sister did, but she still went with her sister and soon the

two started arguing about which one was the best and which one should they ask their father

to buy for them.

"Welcome, please come..." When Naruto was about to look for the beautiful owner of the

shop, Misaki appeared from behind the counter, wearing gloves and holding a small scissors

in her hand. The smile on her face spread out into a thousand watt smile when she saw him

"Ara, Naruto-kun, welcome." She then looked around and noticed the girls while removing

her gloves "And the girls are here too, this must be my lucky day."

"Yo, good morning, Misaki." Naruto happily greeted her, raising his hand.

"How do you do, Obaa-chan." Evelyn waved with both hands while Kaguya bowed her head

to the woman, causing Misaki to giggle as the similarities in appearances yet differences in

personalities between the two.

"I'm fine, thank you girls." Much like the other women of his harem, Misaki was well aware

of the twin being Naruto's daughters, but because of the permanent spell he had placed on

her, she accepted it without any question "Choose anything you like, okay?"

"Thank you, obaa-chan." And the twin went back to choose their flowers.

"They grew up so fast, didn't they?" Misaki asked as she gently nudged Naruto's side with her

elbow "Good job."

"I know." Naruto grinned "Physically, they're almost nineteen now. They will stop aging soon

enough." However mentally, they were still somewhat younger and their childishnesses

usually were usually expressed in their normal behaviors. Like their mother had said, it

would take some more time, might be weeks or months to fully mature.

"That's good to hear." Misaki smiled before asking "So, are they trained?"

"Evelyn is better in magic, but Kaguya is stronger as a Kunoichi." Naruto nodded "It's like

these two balance each other out."

"Is that so?" Misaki giggled "You know, I can't wait to introduce them to my daughters. They

will definitely make good friends with Ino and the girls." She then leaned in closer and

walked her fingers on his chest "Just like you are going to make a good friend to them in the

near future, aren't you?" Naruto smirked. There was no doubt about that.

"Of course." Naruto answered, his hands went around and groped a handful of her ass. The

thin and silky fabric of her pants didn't do much justice "I can't wait to meet your daughter,

and her friends." After saying that, he leaned in closer and kissed the blonde, sliding his

tongue into her mouth.

"Are, here we go." Placing both hands together in front of her, Evelyn said in delight with a

huge smile as she turned around and saw her father bending Misaki against the counter, his

hands freely groping the busty MILF's voluptuous body "Way to go dad!" She cheered.

"Would you knock it off?" Kaguya gave her sister a stern look before she quickly went to the

window to close the curtain and flipped the panel on the door from open to close. She then

flinched and jumped in surprise when she felt a hand rubbing her ass "What are you doing

one-sama?"

"See if there's any stick up your ass. Unfortunately, there's nothing in there." The elder twin

said with a smug grin "Cute butt, by the way... almost as good as mine."

"Slut."

"Virgin." Evelyn countered swiftly "Say anything you want sis, but sooner or later..." she

walked behind her sister and placed both hands on her shoulders, forcing her to look at their

father making out with one of his lovers "you're going to end up in that position, and you're

going to love every second of it." Kaguya bit her lower lips and said nothing in response

"Mom said you were a succubus, so there must be something in here, right?"

Her hand went down, but Kaguya quickly jumped out of the way before her sister could

grope anything and randomly picked a rose from its vase.

"Let's buy this flower and go home."

"Aw so cute..." Evelyn giggled and followed her sister.

Line Break

Silently removing himself from Kushina, Evelyn, Mira and Eve's naked embraces, Naruto

left a couple of clones in his place just in case the girls woke up with empty stomach, and

gave each maid who had been serving his cock while he was sleeping a wet kiss and

rewarded them with his clone before climbing out of his bed and heading down to the kitchen

on the first floor to grab for himself a cup of water without bothering to put on any clothes,

feeling a bit thirsty after waking up from hours of nonstop sex with his lovers and some of his

personal maids.

His residence wasn't very crowded in the early morning like this. Most of the succubi maids

had all gone to sleep, leaving only the ones who had early shifts working.

Stepping into the kitchen, Naruto grabbed a bottle and quickly filled an empty cup full of

water. As he drank in satisfaction, Naruto couldn't help but wonder what should he do today,

staying at home and having sex with his girls, or heading out to hunt some new women to

fuck. The village was crowded with people from all over the world, and while he was taking

his daughters out for a tour yesterday, many Kunoichi had caught his eyes, and he could help

but want to add them into his harem as well.

Yep, maybe he should do.

Finishing his cup, Naruto breathed out and put it down the table. He was about to grab some

foods in the refrigerator, then suddenly...

"Good morning, Otou-sama..." without his training, he would probably jump in surprise.

However, he did flinch when he heard that voice and quickly snapped his head to the side to

see who it was.

"Evely..." Naruto stopped when he noticed the haircut and remembered the way she

addressed him "no... Kaguya." The two looked so much alike that in the dark, they could be

easily mistaken. His younger daughter Kaguya was standing in front of him, wearing a cute

pajama that looked too small for her figure. The sleepwear showed a fair amount of skin but

still managed to hide just enough to keep her dignity "Good morning to... uh..." he looked

down and noticed that she was looking at his cock, which was dangling between his thighs

"Yeah... well, sorry about this." He chuckled sheepishly and looked around to find something

to cover it.

"No, it's alright. You're an incubus, it's completely normal for you to have no shame or

whatsoever." Kaguya said before asking "What are you doing so early in the morning, I

thought you were still in your bedroom with everyone."

"Well, I felt a little thirsty so I decided to go down here to grab a cup of water." He said,

pointing at the bottle "What about you?"

"I just don't feel like sleeping, so I go down here to find something to eat." She then glanced

at his dong again and blushed slightly "Kushina-obaa sama and Evelyn-onee same said your

sperm was very delicious and better than any human foods, is that true?"

"Well, I have never tasted it myself so I don't know, but that's what they says all the time."

Naruto said, grinning confidently.

Then suddenly...

"Can I try it?"

Naruto nearly choked on his own saliva when Kaguya asked that question.

"Eh?" He looked at her, his eyes widened in surprise.

"I come down here to find something to eat, so... why not?" She asked, shrugging.

"But I thought you..."

"To tell you the truth, Otou-sama, I have started feeling horny since last Monday." Kaguya

confessed truthfully, the blush on the face slowly disappeared "Maybe it's because I'm

maturing as a human, but maybe it's because I'm becoming a succubus like Onee-chan."

"Really?" Naruto questioned in surprise.

"I don't know, but there's one thing I know pretty sure about, that I no longer feel shame

about all... these, and get turned on everytime I see you naked." She said, pointing at his cock

"It happened three days ago, so..."

"That's great news Kaguya." Naruto smiled at her "Congratulation."

"I... I guess" The blonde laughed nervously "Before you ask why I'm faking it, it's because I

still don't feel very comfortable."

"Don't worry, it's completely understandable." Naruto smiled, nodding his head.

"There... there's something I want to show you..." After saying that, Kaguya turned around

and grabbed the waistband of her pants. Without hesitation, she bent down and pulled it down

to her ankle, exposing her perfectly ass to Naruto, who gasped in shock at what he saw.

"Is that..." Something was plugging her asshole, kept where it was by her thong. It was

something that Naruto recognized immediately, because he had used it on his lovers for more

times than he could remember "Is that dildo? Where did you get it?" Naruto asked as he

approached his daughter.

"In Mira-nee's bedroom. It used to help a lot, but not much recently." Kaguya said as she

reached her hand behind her ass and tried to pull it out.

"Here, let me help you dear." Naruto said as he reached his hand down her ass and grabbed

the base of the fake dick. As slowly as possible, Naruto intentionally pulled the dildo out of

his daughter's anal hole, causing her to moan and gasp in pleasure. As he dragged it out,

Naruto couldn't help but feel amazed at the shape and size of the vibrator, which was still

vibrating and twitching like an angry snake "Why you look at that!?." Chuckling slyly,

Naruto turned off the dildo to stop it from hitting him in the face "Let's see here..." Naruto

said as he lowered the fake cock down to compare it with his dick. It was nearly as long, as

expected from one of Mira's toys "Ara, it's almost as big as your father's dick, are you

preparing yourself form me?"

"Are you giving me your sperm or not?" Kaguya asked, pouting cutely "You know I can cook

a good meal for and by myself, right?"

"Sorry, sorry, I was just teasing." Naruto chuckled as he put the dildo away "However, you

might or might not have already known this, but you have to please me sexually to make me

cum, my dear." his hand reached out and placed on her right breast. The moment he had been

waiting for had finally come.

"But I'm not ready." Kaguya stepped back, crossing her arms in front of her. "And I also don't

know how to do it."

"Then let me show you how it's done." Naruto then looked around, searching for a target. He

quickly located one and went outside to grab her "Alright dear, I have a favor to ask." He said

to the maid, who had a beautiful face, black hair and an attractive body "Can you help me

show my daughter how to milk my dick?"

"Of course, it'd be my honor, master Uzumaki." The maid nodded her head, smiling

seductively.

"C'mon, let's go somewhere more private. It's always more comfortable with a bed around."

With that, they left for Kaguya's room.

Line Break

"Fuwahh..." Evelyn moaned delightedly and put both hands on her cheeks as Clone Naruto,

the one he had created earlier that morning, pulled his hard cock out of her mouth after

cumming a giant load down her throat, giving the blonde succubus the breakfast she loved so

much "That was so delicious, thank you for your hard work." She cooed, smiling happily at

him before taking hold of his cock, which was so big she couldn't fully grab it, and putting

the tip in her mouth, slurping lewdly and noisily while swirling her tongue around the glans.

"God, you're such a cock hungry slut." The clone said as he leaned his head back and grunted

throatily in pleasure "That's right, suck that cock, suck it like a slut you are." His words

turned Evelyn on even more than before. The young succubus didn't disappoint him, as she

quickly went to work and successfully shoved his massive dick down her throat once again

after several tries, causing Naruto's eyes to roll back blissfully. After cumming for the second

time, the clone roughly pulled his hip back and picked Evelyn up by her arm before turning

her around. Positioning the tip of his cock at the entrance of her pussy, Naruto plunged his

cock into her pussy with a powerful hip thrust, punching right through cervix and going deep

into her delightful womb.

"FUCK!" Evelyn cried as her father's clone took hold of her boobs and started fucking his

cock into her with long and powerful hard thrust. "Your cock is so big I love it! I love it!" She

exclaimed and came, rapidly. The lewd and wet sound of moaning and fucking soon echoed

throughout the huge bedchamber.

"God, your pussy is fucking awesome, Evelyn." The clone then called his twin, who was

kneeling at the other end of the bed and fucking his girl in a doggy-style position "Hey dude,

bring your girl over here, let's double team them together."

"That's a great idea." The second clone of Naruto grinned in response. A brilliant idea

appeared in his mind "But you know what, I'd rather have her crawling, so Mira-chan..." He

lowered himself down to the white haired succubus whose anus had been stuffed completely

with his cock and asked nicely while twisting her nipples "Can you be a good girl and crawl

toward your sister for me?"

"Just make sure you don't slip out." She responded, turning her head around to give him a wet

kiss before slowly, she started crawling forward. Her clone wrapped his arms around her

slender body and placed his hands on her boobs, keeping the two of them connect. As Mira

made her way to her sister, her lover's clone teasingly gave a few thrusts, sending mini-

orgasm through her body, and causing her to make a wet mess on the bed.

When the two were close enough, both girls were pushed against each other, their tits

squashed together, until they were standing upright with the other girl. Holding them like

this, the guys started fucking their cocks into the succubi's respective fuck holes, bringing all

four of them into an orgasmic pleasure state. As the boys fucked them while keeping their

bodies exactly where they wanted, Evelyn and Mira leaned their heads over and captured

each other's lips in a passionate kiss, moaning in pleasure as the feeling of steel hard dicks

moving strong and fast inside their bodies and the sensitive parts, especially their nipples,

pressing and rubbing against each other.

"Ara, it's good to see such energetic children in the morning..." The door of the room was

then opened and Kushina walked in with a smile on her face, with only a small, fluffy towel

on her body. Her hair was still wet from a bath with Eve, who were still having fun in the

bathroom with a group of maids and a clone of Naruto "sorry for disturbing, but do you know

where my son is?"

"Ma'am, aren't we your son too?" The clone who was destroying Mira's ass asked jokingly,

making Kushina giggle.

"Of course, but I'm talking about the original, your boss." She said "Usually, he would be

head over heel for me now. It's also strange to see his clones having fun with his girls without

him around."

"Don't ask me. He woke up around three in the morning and went to the kitchen to have

water. He created us to the girls and the maids so along the way so... yeah, you got the idea,

we don't know where he is." The second clone said before he grabbed Evelyn by her chin,

turning her head to the side and forcing her to break the kiss with Mira so that he could kiss

him.

"Alright, I seems I have to find him myself then." Kushina nodded and turned around to

leave, but before she left the room, the red haired woman turned around with a mischievous

smile "Hey boys..." She called seductive, and waited for the right moment the two turned

their heads to her before opening her bathrobe, showing them her body. The clones widened

their eyes in shock, and came at the sight of their mother's super erotic body, filling their girls

up "Glad to know that I still have that affect on you." Kushina giggled, wrapping the towel

back "See you later." She winked sexily and left the room.

They said he had gone to the kitchen earlier that morning then maybe the maids who worked

during early shifts at the first floor would know where he was.

"Naruto-sama? Oh, we saw him leaving with Kaguya-ojou sama and one of our friends while

wearing nothing. Maybe it's finally happened, Kushina-sama."

To say she was surprised to hear such an answer was an understatement.

To make sure that the girl didn't make up a story, Kushina headed to Kaguya's room in a

hurry. Changing into her succubus form, the former queen of succubi erased her present with

a couple of illusion spells in order to sneak into their room without alerting them, if they were

really doing it.

They weren't kidding when they said observations were the best teacher.

Standing on the bed as naked as the day he was born, holding his rock hard cock in hand

while stroking it, was none other than her son, Uzumaki Naruto. Kneeling in front of him,

also naked, covered in cum with a blissful smile and a fuck-stupid expression on her face

was, unmistakably, her younger granddaughter, Kaguya. There was also a girl with a swollen

belly full of sperm sleeping on the other side of the bed.

"Here I come again, Kaguya!" Naruto said through clenched teeth, his cock swelling and

throbbing in his hand. The first blast of cum that seemed to last for seconds rocketed out of

the tip of his cock and hit Kaguya in the face, covering it in a thick glaze of gooey substance.

After the first shot was over, the second immediately followed splattering onto her face

before dripping and flowing down her breasts. "Here, have a drink." Grabbing her head with

both hands, Naruto thrust his cock into her open mouth, stretching her lips to the limit and

hosed the rest of his orgasm down her throat. Kushina could only watch on in awe as Kaguya

drank his cum without spilling a drop even though she didn't have any experience in the art of

sex, let alone in handling someone like him.

Looking at the amount of cum on the bed and around the room, Kushina realized the two had

been going at it for awhile. He had probably come a lot inside her, yet her belly was still flat.

There was only one explanation for this. She had become a succubus, one that was gifted

with the ability to absorb sperm into her body at a faster rate than normal succubi, much like

Kushina and the high-class sex demons.

What a great news to know!

"Awesome!" Naruto commented as he pulled his cock out Kaguya's mouth after she had

sucked it clean for him "Now, let's continue while you're still at it. Where do you want it this

time?"

Coming to her sense, Kaguya smiled seductively, a smile that only made her look more like

her twin sister Evelyn. She then turned around and lied down on stomach before raising her

womanly hips above the rest of her body, presenting her ass to him lying on her face and her

chest, Kaguya snaked her hands around and moved over her ass cheeks, cupping the full

curves, spreading them apart and showing him her butthole.

"My pussy is still sore, so how about you make good use of this one, otou-sama?"

"Oh hell yeah I will." Naruto smirked as he shot himself to his feet. Standing in a crouching

manner with his legs spread, Naruto took hold of his daughter's waist before placing the tip of

his cock at the rosebud of her ass.

"Take me on a ride, tou-sama."

Kushina quietly left after Naruto had plunged his cock into Kaguya's ass, feeling so horny

that she couldn't stay and watch more, and changing back to her normal human form as soon

as she got to the hallway of the second floor.

"You, come with me now." Locating a couple of clones that had just finished having sex with

a group of maids, Kushina removed them from the girls and pulled them with him by their

cocks. She found an empty room, her room to be exact but she had never used it because she

preferred staying in Naruto's room all the time "Inside." She said commandingly, pushing

them inside.

"Woah, take it easy there kaa-chan." One of them said "You know we can satisfy you in any

way you want, right?

Kushina simply clicked her fingers, using some succubus magic on her two sons, who

widened their eyes in surprise when the effect of the spells had finally taken over. With a loud

groan, their cocks swelled greatly in size, with the heads also became swollen with an angry

purple like red color.

It wasn't the first time she had used that spell on her son, so they weren't surprised, only

horny.

"I'm looking for more than just satisfaction, boys." She declared and untied the towel.

Smiling seductively, Kushina removed the small piece of clothing and dropped it down to the

floor "I want you two to fuck me like your lives depend on it. Can you do that for me?"

The clones turned their heads and looked at each other as face-splitting grins broke out on

their faces.

nine tails

Chapter 14

Kyuubi

"So, I will repeat it once more time for you Naruto-kun." Standing in front of him, separated

only by bars, the red hair woman repeated her words as she licked her lips seductively "You

release me from this seal and let me absorb your human essence, bringing me one step closer

to my goal, and in return, I will lend you my power, make you stronger and remove my

influence over your sperm so you can have children with your lovers, mainly Kushina-obaa

sama." She smirked, "It's not every day a deal like this is made, Naruto-kun, so think

carefully."

"Before I start thinking about it, care to repeat what exactly you are going to do to drain

human essence from me again?" he asked, being taken over by curiosity.

"Normally, I will cast a spell on a man to drain their human essence, but in some special case,

I throw the Orb of Essence at men, letting it suck their essences away, killing them in the

process. The orb will give those essences to me once it returns." Naruto paled with a forced

smile. He opened his mouth to say, but she immediately interrupted him "However, because

you're an incubus, why not have it sex demons way?"

"And?"

"I will suck it out of you through sex. I'm going to have sex with you any place, any time you

want in exchange for that rich essence flowing inside your body. I might not be a succubus

like them, but don't forget that my best friend is the princess herself. I have followed her on

many of her wild adventures before meeting you so I have picked a thing or two about sex, so

you don't have to worry about me disappointed my lover."

And that sealed the deal. How could he, an incubus, refuse such an offer from someone as

beautiful as she was, especially when he can earn more than he would have to give?

But still, could he trust her? She was a fox youkai, a race known for their mischievousness

and playful natures.

Not to mention that she was the one who was responsible for the death of his father, who she

killed because she thought his death could give her what she wanted.

[Earlier that day]

"You're doing it wrong Kaguya, you're supposed to lick over there and leave this side to me."

"Like this?"

"Yes, just like that."

Wearing nothing but his birth suit, Naruto sat comfortably on his couch in his room, his head

leant back against the headrest, while his arms were resting on the armchairs of the

comfortable seat as his sexy daughters, Evelyn and Kaguya, lavished attention on his cock.

Their tits, which had grown nearly a cup bigger than before, pressed against his cock,

squishing two third of it in between. Currently, Evelyn was teaching her sister how to give

their father a double tit-fuck while simultaneously pleasuring what their breasts couldn't

cover, basically the upper one-third of his dick that poked out between their giant

marshmallows.

It'd been three days since the night Kaguya lost her virginity to her father, and the more time

passed, the more comfortable she became. It turned out that she wasn't just a late bloomer but

also a slow bloomer, succubus that didn't have to deal with puberty but matured slower than

usual, making her slowly become a sex demon instead of turning into one right after her first

time. They had partied all day long to celebrate her first time, much to Kaguya's

embarrassment.

After the party was over (Eve returned to Ygvar after that), Kaguya became more

comfortable with him, and she could finally ask him to have sex with her without feeling

embarrassed. However, she still couldn't have sex when there's someone else around, but it

was no longer an issue because she had become even more comfortable with her sex life.

Kaguya could now let her father ride her with an audience watching.

However, today was the day she was comfortable enough to have someone else join in.

Unexpectedly, Evelyn volunteered herself to be her first partner. The two stripped naked and

ripped his pants apart as soon as they had come to an agreement, which was Evelyn would

teach Kaguya everything she knows.

"Now, let's continue to fuck his cock with our tits, I think daddy is getting bored of us."

Evelyn giggled as she glanced at him. Nodding her head, Kaguya quickly followed her

sister's example, moving her tits up and down his cock simultaneously with her sister, making

sure to keep them tightly around the steel hard pole like Evelyn had told to, causing them to

moan when their nipples rubbed against each other while their father grunted at the heavenly

feeling of their tits around his cock.

"Damn, you girls are blowing my mind away. Good job." Naruto commented, giving each of

them a couple of pats on the head, causing the girls to giggle and coo excitedly. He really

hoped Mira was here to have fun with him with her sisters, but she had already had her fill

earlier that morning and went back to Ygvar to buy some new clothes, as many of hers had

been ripped apart by him "Make sure to lube my cock carefully, because I'm going to fuck

you two next."

"Aw, how nice of you! You always spoil us so much tou-sama." Kaguya smiled, leaning

forward and planting a kiss on the right side of his cock.

"Usually, I would like to take it raw, since I'm always wet for you, daddy." Evelyn giggled.

After that, both busty succubi leant forward and planted a wet kiss onto Naruto's cock head

before proceeding to lick their respective sides of his impressive dong, treating it like a huge

Popsicle he used to buy for them when they were younger. Their tits shot up and down,

covering every square inch of his exposed cock in their heaven pillows, at the same slathering

their father's cock in a thick coat of saliva.

"Your tails, in my hands, now," Naruto commanded firmly, and immediately their long, thin

tail with spade-like ends found their ways into his hands. Naruto closed his hands around

them and gripped them tightly, causing both girls to moan lustfully in pleasure. The tail of a

succubus was a very sensitive part of their body, second only to her pussy. Because it was a

huge disadvantage for them in battle, matured succubi could control their tail at will, but

young succubi like his daughters couldn't do it as well as their older counterparts, and a

slightest of his touch could become a huge joint of pleasure that ran through their bodies like

electricity.

"Let's... let's kiss, Kaguya." Evelyn managed between moans.

"Y-yes, one-sama." The younger twin nodded and, as if they could read each other's mind,

started to make out in a lustful, open-mouthed kiss with his member in between. Naruto

nearly blew his load right there when he felt them swap spits between their tongues and the

bulbous head of his cock while passionately kissing each other and fighting for dominance

over the pre-cum that was oozing out from the tip. Naruto was caught completely off guard

once again when both girls grabbed as much tits-fleshes they could hold in their hand and

started wildly pumping their breasts up and down his length. The loud, rapid slapping of their

breasts against his thighs filled the room and along with the moaning, were the only sounds

they could hear.

"That's it, I'm cumming!" Despite his best efforts, he couldn't take it anymore as the

wonderful experience became too much for his brain to handle. The twin didn't have to wait

long as Naruto groaned loudly and shamelessly, jerking his hip upwards and came, spewing

his first load into the air with such force it managed to reach several feet in the air, nearly

hitting the ceiling before splattering down on his daughters like gooey rain. Evelyn and

Kaguya watched in awe and moaned in delight as sperm fell down their faces, their heads and

their breasts and splattered all over their bodies.

He came for god knows how long. When the flow of cum finally died down, he could finally

moan happily and sit up to watch his daughters cleaning his cum from each other's body

using only their tongues. It was truly a sight to behold when they licked their faces and

breasts clean from his cum. They drank a lot, but still kept a decent amount of cum in their

mouth to give each other when they kissed again. Such a sight only made his cock become

harder than ever.

Releasing their tails, Naruto grabbed them by their hairs and separated their mouths. Then,

without warning, Naruto turned Kaguya's head toward him and slammed her face down his

cock, forcing her to take all sixteen inches of heavy meat pole in one go. With Evelyn, Naruto

forced her to stand up and pulled her face toward him for a kiss, something that she happily

and lustfully returned. As their tongues entangled inside Evelyn's mouth, Naruto could feel

Kaguya swirl her tongue around his cock while sucking like a vacuum. Her hands soon found

his big balls, and she lovingly fondled them in her hands.

Naruto stayed like that for awhile, before he switched the girls' places, making out with

Kaguya while Evelyn would deep throat his spit soaked cock. The girls obediently followed

his guides without caring about how rough he was using them in the slightest, as the lust for

their father had completely overwhelmed their minds. They being his daughters made it even

harder for Kaguya and Evelyn to resist having sex with him.

He continued to stay like that for an hour, switching the girls' place every five minutes before

blowing his second load into the lucky one, Kaguya. However, it wasn't like Evelyn didn't get

anything, as he had removed his hand from her hair and moved it down to finger her pussy,

making her cum several times.

Unable to take it anymore, he grabbed Evelyn and pushed her down to the floor, tits up. Not

pausing for a second, he got on top of her and slammed himself into her soaking wet core,

splitting her open before starting hammering into her womb. Evelyn's world went white as

she came everywhere, squirting all over her father's cock as it stretched her cunt to its limit.

Being enticed by the feeling of his eldest daughter's soaking wet pussy as it clenched so

tightly around him every time she came, Naruto's cock throbbed and twitched madly inside

Evelyn, drawing desperate moans out of her mouth.

Didn't want to be left out, Kaguya climbed onto her sister's face and ground her pussy into

Evelyn's mouth, effortlessly shutting her up and forcing her to eat her pussy out. Moaning in

delight, Kaguya then grabbed her boobs and pushed them up, offering them to her father who

immediately leant forward and captured one of her nipples into his mouth while roughly

moulding her underboobs with both hands. The younger succubus then grabbed her sisters'

long legs, pulling it up and toward her until she could have a firm grip on Evelyn's ankles,

holding it for her father and causing Evelyn's pussy to tighten like an iron grip around his

cock as he fucked with the same if not greater speed than before.

Reaching his climax, Naruto immediately blew the first four giant shots of his load into

Evelyn's womb, filling her up and making her belly swell slightly from the volume of it. He

then pulled his cock out and hurriedly stood up, holding it in hand. He aimed at Kaguya and

sprayed the rest of his load onto her body and her face, coating her in a thick layer of his

sperm, which was absorbed into her body a few seconds later.

"Tou-sama, please go easy on me..." Kaguya said with a slutty smile as Naruto picked her up

and turned her around, wrapping his right arm around her chest and firmly groping her right

boob, holding her close to him as he grabbed his cock and positioned it at her back door.

"Easy on you? Sorry girl, but I can't go easy on a slut, even if she's my daughter." With that

statement, Naruto plunged his hips forward and all of his cock in. His pelvis smashed her ass

with such force he nearly knocked her away, but immediately he released his hold from her tit

and shot both of his hands out for her wrists, keeping her from going anywhere too far from

him before starting to pound her.

Naruto didn't go fast, preferring to fuck his younger daughter slow but he still made sure that

every thrust was strong enough to knock the air out of her lungs. Kaguya gasped, and cum

everytime Naruto plunged his hip forward, spanking her ass with his pelvis with so much

force it rippled. He kept his cock balls-deep inside her anus for a second or so before pulling

his cock back, but spearing it back in the big head was nearly out, smashing her ass with his

hips and her pussy with his balls. Her eyes rolled back, and her tongue lolled out of her

mouth as Kaguya started panting like a bitch in heat while smiling stupidly, drooling a thin

stream of saliva onto the floor from the tip of her tongue.

"Ugh... my head..."

"What was that?!" Naruto suddenly stopped when he heard a voice "Did you say something,

Evelyn?"

"Hm, what are you talking about?" the blonde asked back, tilting her head to the side.

"I thought... forget it, maybe just my imagination." Naruto shrugged and started to move his

hips again.

"Say cheese!" Evelyn suddenly appeared in front of her sister with a camera in hands.

Raising it up to her face, the succubus didn't waste a second to take several shameful pictures

of her sister, capturing every angle of her fucked stupid expression "You too daddy, show me

what you got!" Chuckling at his daughter's antics, Naruto removed one of his hands from

Kaguya's wrist, letting her hand fall freely to her side and moved down, hooking her thigh

before lifting her leg up. Giggling perversely, Evelyn kneeled down and took several pictures

of Kaguya's drooling pussy and her father's genital and heavy and bloated sack of balls

"Kaguya is going to love this!" She said happily, holding the pictures in hands. Evelyn loved

to prank, just like him. Kaguya might have become as slutty as any succubus when it came to

sex, but she was still a well-mannered girl, with more common senses than any of them.

Being teased and blackmailed with pictures like that by her own sister were something she

was not going to like "Can you put these pictures in my room please." Evelyn said as she

turned to a maid and gave her the pictures.

"Will do, Evelyn ojou sama." Bowing her head, the maid walked away.

Hooking his hand under her other thigh and lifting her left up, bouncing her on his cock while

simultaneously thrusting his hip up, Naruto increased his speed and continued to fuck her like

that for quite some time, using every last bit of his willpower to stop himself from cumming,

because he wanted to deliver a big one. Evelyn had crawled over and was now whoring

herself to his balls, while her sister Kaguya had been turned into a drooling and whimpering

mess.

Then, without any warning, he buried all of his cock inside her ass and came, grunting loudly

as he unloaded a massive amount of sperm into his daughter, filling her up and stretching her

belly in the process. However, instead of standing and enjoying the feeling, Naruto started

moving his hips and began to fuck his load into her, causing Kaguya to have a massive

orgasm herself, which caused her to squirt her juice all over her sister's face.

He came for minutes, and when he was done, Kaguya looked close to nine-months pregnant.

He had come so fast and so much her body couldn't absorb it in time.

Slowly, Naruto lifted her off his cock, milking the last gallon of leftover sperm inside his

cock. When his cock was completely released from her body, a fair amount of sperm flowed

out and coated his dick in a thick layer of cum before her asshole automatically shut tight,

keeping his cum inside. Grinning blissfully, Naruto put Kaguya down the longue and leant

forward to kiss her, which she responded weakly.

"Rest for a bit, I will come back and play with this hole later." He said after releasing her

tongue from his mouth while rubbing her pussy and teasingly flicking her clitoris. "Now..."

Naruto said as he turned around, looking at his daughter who was waiting for her turn rather

impatiently "What should I do with a much bigger slut like you?" He asked thoughtfully.

One and a half hour later, Naruto stepped out of his room, feeling somewhat satisfied.

Turning around and giving his daughters, who were completely spent after three hours

straight of marathon sex with him, one last look, Naruto then closed the door of his bedroom

without making a sound. Two maids immediately appeared at his sides and together they put

a coat on his naked body, giving them a thankful smile, Naruto made his way down to the

kitchen, the sight of his cock stood proudly in front of him stole all the attentions, but that

wasn't something news.

"Having fun, aren't you?" Naruto asked with a smirk as he walked into the kitchen and saw a

couple of his clones double-penetrating a rather young looking, naked apron wearing maid

with long light purple hair while sandwiching them in between their bodies. It was actually

Kushina's idea. She wanted him to make the place livelier and much more enjoyable for the

succubi, so in order to do that, she had requested him to create three hundred clones every

day and had them wandering around the land to have sex with any maid who asked for it. It

was an idea that Naruto had agreed wholeheartedly, and from the point, the sight of his clones

having sex with the maids was no longer an uncommon sight.

However, the downside of such idea was that every time a clone popped from existence, its

memories and experiences would be transferred to him, turning him on. It made him feel

really horny, and basically horny all the time, especially when several clones disappeared at

the same time.

But it was a small price to pay... a price that he would pay without hesitation.

"Aye boss." A clone replied with a grin "You know what boss. I think you should try this one

out later, because, holy in the name of our mother, she's tight!" He exclaimed, holding her

hips tighter and moving his hip faster.

"Is that so?" Naruto chuckled as he opened the refrigerator and took out a bottle of milk "You

know I will still know how tight it is once you disappear, right?"

"None sense boss, you know it's better to feel it directly with your dick, right?" The other

clone countered, increasing his own pace to match his twin "Plus, she gave amazing head."

"Oh hoh, if that's true, then I think you guys have found a rising star among the maid around

here." Naruto said after taking a gulp of the milk and moved to them "Stop for a second... no

need to pull out." He told them and the clones stopped thrusting their hips, but still keeping

two third of their cocks inside her holes. He took that moment to look at her body. Because

she was sandwiched between his clones, there wasn't much visible other than the sides of her

body, but of course, with his keen eyes, Naruto was able to tell she had a very beautiful body,

with big breasts and big ass and all "What's your name?"

"I am Kyou Goshouin, young master." She introduced herself, lowering her head with a

smile.

"Good." Naruto nodded before saying "Suck my cock."

"With honour, young master." After saying that, she lowered herself down while still staying

in the same position and took his cock into her mouth, sucking lightly before pulling back

and bringing out her tongue to lick around it. She licked his cock skillfully, going from one

side to another before lowering down even further to lick around the base of his cock and his

balls. Giving a long lick all the way up to the tip, Kyou then took his cock into her mouth

again, this time she took more into her mouth and swallowed some down her throat before

pulling back, sucking and slurping lewdly before pushing down again, taking more of his

cock into her mouth.

Naruto took a long pull from the bottle of milk before saying "Okay, that's enough." Hearing

his order, Kyou pulled her head back and released his cock with a wet pop. Planting a wet

and loving kiss to his cock head, she stood up and smiled at him "That was awesome, you

seem to know just the way to please a man, and it's not just because you're a succubus, isn't

it?" He asked amusedly, and the succubus nodded her head while giggling slightly "Have any

serious lover?"

"Yes, I have a husband. We've been together for ten years." She answered.

"What a lucky man!" Naruto commented with a laugh before saying "Anyway,

congratulation, you have earned a spot on my bed tonight, make sure to be there nice and

tight before seven, okay?"

"Your wish is my command, young master."

"Remember to wear something sexy." Naruto grinned before looking at his clones "You guys

can continue." Permission granted, and the two started fucking Kyou again "Go easy on her. I

want to fuck her brain out myself tonight."

With that, he turned around and put the bottle of milk to his mouth. However, he stopped

suddenly and raised an eyebrow in amusement when he saw the woman standing by the door

of the kitchen with her hands raised. After a moment, she started clapping; a smile broke out

on her face as she spoke to him.

"Look who is enjoying himself!" Kushina Uzumaki, dressed in her Kunoichi gears, said as

she walked into the kitchen and toward him "Being so cool, commanding and sexy like that,

you really know how to turn a woman on, Naruto-kun." She said seductively and leant

forward to kiss him, wrapping her arms around his neck. Putting the bottle of milk onto the

table, Naruto hungrily kissed her back, sliding his tongue into her mouth and meeting hers in

a battle for dominance, which he won effortlessly. After a moment, Kushina pulled back,

smiling at her son as she released him from her hold.

"Good morning Kaa-chan." He greeted her with a grin "How was the meeting with the

Hokage?"

"It went well." Kushina said as she removed her forehead protector and the hairline that kept

her hair in a ponytail, letting it fall freely down her back "We were just talking about the

security around the village. After we have a long discussion with the other clan heads,

Hirurzen has agreed to double the Anbu around the village. We were worried that someone

might try to do something, as the third stage of the Chunin Exam is drawing near."

"Do you need any help, kaa-chan?" Naruto asked as his mother removed her Shinobi sandals,

standing barefoot on the floor.

"Nah, I think we will be fine, you can stay here and have all the fun you want without a care.

However, if something bad happens, be sure to be ready to fight for Konoha, alright? We

might be demons, but this place is still our home." Naruto nodded his head firmly. He had no

intention of doing otherwise. Plus, his father would want him to do it too "I will have some of

our succubi patrolling the village at night. I don't want the enemies to quietly sneak into our

village and prepare for a surprise attack."

"Damn, Kushina, with the way you're talking, I think an invasion is definitely going to break

out during the third stage of the exam." Kushina nodded her head, removing her flak jacket

and smiling giddily when Naruto called her by her name.

"That's enough of me, how was your morning?" She looked around "Where are my

granddaughters? Don't tell me that they're still in your bedroom." She glared playfully,

removing the holster from her thigh and the pouch from behind her back.

"Well, that is where I left them." Naruto said with a thoughtful façade "Evelyn wanted to

show her sister how to give double titjob, and the situation got out of hand after the lesson

was over. I had to punish those two because they had been very naughty."

"As expected, but I really shouldn't expect anything less from my big dick son, should I?"

"Please, you know me too well to ask that question." Naruto said as he slapped her tits before

filling his hand with the right one "Anyway, you look a little stressed, want me to help you

relief it?"

"Exactly what I am thinking, but..." Kushina said, but held her hands out to stop him from

ripping her clothes, bending her down and fucking her right on the spot "I'm going to take a

bath first."

"Can I join you?" Naruto asked, looking at her swaying ass as she turned around and walked

away.

"How many times have you busted into the bathroom while I'm taking a bath to fuck me

already?" Naruto shrugged, actually tried to count how many times it had been "Of course,

feel free to join." Naruto grinned and quickly ran after his mother to the closet bathroom,

dropping his coat on the way there.

"Sorry girls, just me and my son this time," Kushina said and shook her head in denial when

a group of maids tried to enter with them, causing them to giggle but actually in

disappointment.

"Go to the bathroom on the second floor, I think some of them are using it." Naruto pointed,

and after crying thankfully, the maids quickly made their ways to the second floor.

"You know, the girls have been enjoying themselves a lot lately. They love to work for you."

Kushina said as she started removing her clothes "There are a few high-class incubuses at

Ygvar that have a living environment just like you, smaller, but still pretty much the same.

However, the maids who work for them aren't very happy with their masters, who usually

neglect them and like to use them as cheap entertainments for their friends that come from all

kinds of races. Succubus loves sex, but they don't like to be treated like that." Naruto nodded.

It's not something he wanted to hear because he couldn't do anything about it "As you can

see, there are many succubi who are willing to become servants of this place, and the number

of girls who sign up for this job is increasing every day. It's because the rumour about you

being such an amazing and caring master has spread all over Ygvar. You're pretty popular

now, you know?"

"Well, it's not like every incubus can use shadow clones and has a human heart like me,

right?" Naruto chuckled as he followed his mother, who had stripped naked, into the shower.

"Right." Kushina nodded and threw him a bottle of shampoo, which he caught in his hand

"Wash my hair with that, I will take care of that erection for you." Nodding, Naruto turned on

the shower and let the water poured down Kushina's head, making her hair wet before

opening the bottle and squeezing a fair amount of gel into his palm. Kneeling down in front

of him, Kushina took his cock into her mouth and started sucking, making it steel hard again

after a few seconds. She didn't move her head, though because she knew what her son was

going to do in that situation.

Naruto then placed both hands on her hair and started running his fingers through her hair,

rubbing the silky strands together with his gel covered hands. As foam started forming on her

beautiful red hair, Naruto began to thrust her hips, slowly fucking her face with seven inches

of his cock. He kept a steady rhyme, not too fast to get overwhelmed by the pleasure and

forget to wash his mother hair, but not slow enough to keep him from feeling good.

"Now, careful or the water will get in your nose." As Naruto opened the shower to wash the

foam from her hair, increasing his pace a little, Kushina intentionally gagged and choked on

his cock, causing her throat to vibrate and saliva to build up inside her mouth, wetting his

cock in the process. Grunting lustfully in pleasure, Naruto crammed the last eight inches of

his cock into her mouth, grinding his crotch against her face. As Kushina continued to choke

on his cock, he kept her head like that by holding her behind the neck.

It didn't take it long for him to get her hair done. Putting the shower back to where it was

above them, Naruto dragged Kushina's face off his cock, moaning in pleasure when Kushina

tried to suck him back in. "Easy there slut." Successfully taking his cock out of her throat,

Naruto then swung his hip side to side, hitting the arch succubus' cheeks with his cock,

making her moan with a lustful smile.

"This... that... alright, I got it."

"What was that?"

"What was what?" Kushina asked in confusion as Naruto looked around as if he was looking

for something.

"Did you say something just now, kaa-chan?" He asked, looking down at her.

"I did not." Kushina shook her head "Why you ask?"

"I thought I heard someone's voice... it's a woman's voice, so I thought it was you." He said

thoughtful "Well, I heard it this morning when I was having sex with Evelyn and Kaguya. I

thought it was Evelyn, but she gave me, pretty much, the same answer." He shrugged his

shoulders "Maybe I have imagined it again." He wouldn't be surprised if his brain had

somehow gotten affected by all the pleasure he had been feeling lately, but little did he know

that with only the first sentence of his speech, Kushina had already had the right answer for

why Naruto kept hearing a female voice... which undoubtedly came from the inside of his

mind.

Has she wakened up already? Kushina couldn't help but think as she let Naruto skull-fuck

her. Should she tell her son, since it was very important?

However, when Kushina thought about it, the succubus realised that girl hadn't tried to do

anything yet (which was strange, considering who she was) so maybe there was still time for

her to prepare the speech and go into details for her beloved son. She wouldn't want him to

get overwhelmed or anything.

Line Break

After the bath, Naruto headed to his personal training ground at the back of his residence,

close to the backyard to train. Not only was he an incubus but he was also a Shinobi with the

dream of becoming Hokage. He needed to train hard to become stronger. Hours and hours of

sex had already helped to keep his body in the best shape, but it didn't increase his abilities as

a ninja so normal training were still there in his daily life.

He just wished that he had a training partner to train with, someone that could fight him head

on and hold their ground against him. Usually, it would be his mother, but with the final stage

of the Chunin Exam drawing near, she had her own duty to worry about, so she didn't have

much time to spend in training with him. The succubi were also out of question.

In the end, he trained alone. After he had finished the warm up and light exercise, Naruto

started with his old skills, as he didn't want them to become rusty. Then, he went into the

family's library and took a couple of water and wind release ninjutsu and fuinjutsu scrolls

with him when he left. It would be a lot easier for him to learn Fuinjutsu with his mother's

help, but Naruto wasn't called the most talented Shinobi of his generation for nothing.

Three hours later, Naruto came to a stop. He wanted to skip lunch, but the maids appeared,

carrying some of his most favourite dishes with them, including two very sexy succubi with

oiled bodies. Giving them his gratitude, he dug in, eating his lunch on the training ground

while the maids were giving him their best blowjobs, before fucking them as dessert. After

they had been carried away by their friends, Naruto continued training for two more hours

before he decided to take a nap under a cherry blossom tree, suddenly feeling very sleepy but

didn't pay much mind to it.

As he slept, Naruto had a dream, and it was an extremely wet one. The incubus saw himself

half-sitting and half-lying on a king size bed like throne, completely naked with one of the

hardest erection in the world. Floating beside the armchairs of his throne were his lovely

Satan, Serafall Leviathan and the queen of succubi, Eve, who was in her succubus form. He

had his arms wrapped around their womanly hips and his hands caressed their supple asses.

Serafall and Eve were offering their tits to him, and he was sucking their nipples, moving

between four diamond hard nubs.

Sitting behind him with her arms wrapped around his neck, hands on his chest, heavy tits on

the top of his head, was his mother, who was also naked. In the same state as their

mother/grandmother were, kneeling between his legs were Mira and his lovely daughters.

Mira was popping her head madly on his cock, while the twin was sucking his balls, giving

the two large testicles the attention of their tongue and mouth.

Lying in the bed, being fucked by three clones each, were his sex slaves like Tsunade, Haku,

Mikoto, Misaki...etc...etc. The clones ruthlessly pounded their cocks into the women's

outstretched holes, fucking them so good and fast their entire bodies were shaking with

constant orgasms.

It was at that moment Naruto realised he wasn't staying in any bedroom but in the middle of a

city. As far as his eyes could see, cum was flying everywhere, caused by people who were

having sex with each other. Women, beautiful and attractive, regardless of their species, were

being sexually treated by tall, handsome and extremely well-endowed men, who were none

other than copies of himself, his clones. While he didn't know he could create that many

clones, as he had never tried before, it was still an impressive sight to witness.

He was starting to enjoy himself, losing into the feelings of Mira's throat when it happened.

The whole city lifted up as if a thousand flashlights had been turned on and pointed at him.

Blinking several times, Naruto removed his hands from Eve's ass and used it to shield his

eyes away from the light, just in time to see a figure climbing onto the bed and walking

elegantly toward him. Based on the deadly curves of the body, and the sexy walking

movements, Naruto could tell that it was a woman, but the light had prevented him from

having a look at her face, but he knew she was wearing a fancy cloak and had very long,

might be longer than his mother, red hair that started darkening to black near its ends.

Then suddenly, his mother tightened her arms around his neck, keeping it still at her stomach.

Eve and Serafall took hold of his arms and kept them firmly at their side. Eve and Kaguya

released his balls and stood up, walking backwards to the woman before pulling her cloak off

her body, revealing what could be one of the sexiest bodies Naruto had ever seen in his life.

Her skin was healthy, smooth and absolutely flawless. H-cup breasts that stood perfectly on

her chest, completed with perky nipples and light pink areolas. She had a feminine toned and

tight flat stomach that belonged to a small waist, with a straight cut line down the middle of

her tummy. Her womanly hips flared to the sides, connecting to a pair of sexy, athletic thighs

and mile long legs. His cock twitched madly inside Mira's throat just by looking at that sexy

body.

Then, Kaguya and Eve dropped the cloak down to the bed and kneeled down again, but not

between his legs but at their sides. Their hands then put onto his ankles and they pressed his

legs down hard, harder than he thought they could do.

When Mira pulled back and wrapped her small hand around his cock, holding it around the

base before moving to the side to make some space, Naruto suddenly realised the girls

weren't here in his dream to have sex with him.

They were here to prepare him for her, that woman. Naruto tried to move, but the only part of

his body that responded to his order, was his hips, as the rest were being held down by the

girls. The girls got on top of him and positioned her pussy right above of his cock while her

hands put on his chest.

"Give me a lot, okay?"

A lot of what?

He wanted to ask, but his words died in his throat and the only thing that came out was a loud

moan when she slammed her hip down, sheathing his cock into her impossibly tight cunt.

The next moment, Naruto woke up with a startle.

But he didn't wake up in his personal training ground... he woke up in a sewer, a real but huge

sewer with water on the floor.

"Okay, not a dream..." Naruto muttered as he touched the wall with his hand. It felt so real.

He was worried for a moment that his mind was playing tricks with him because it had been

scrambled by the pleasure he had the past few weeks "Where am I anyway?" He asked.

Looking at himself, Naruto could see that he was fully clothed, unlike in his dream.

"Grrr..."

Naruto snapped his head to the side in caution when he heard an animalistic growl of some

animal. It came from the other side of the tunnel.

"Who's there?" It's rather stupid to ask an animal something like that, but it was just pure

instinct. It didn't respond,

Carefully, Naruto started walking and made his way to the darkness in front of him. His

strong eyesight and the dim light helped him see where he was going, but he couldn't see

anything at the other side because it was just so dark. Naruto wandered aimlessly through the

tunnels for awhile. Strangely enough, he felt like he knew where he was going as if there was

an invisible force was guiding him through the seemingly abandoned sewer, dragging his feet

in the filthy water.

He continued until he stood before a huge set of gates that were held closed by a single piece

of paper with 'seal' written on it.

Naruto could feel it, there was something at the other side of that bars. His eyes widened

when he felt Youki... a lot of it.

"Come closer..." A deep voiced called out to him, filled with malice and power.

"You can talk?" Naruto asked, before carefully approaching the gate "Why don't you show

yourself?" Naruto asked. Whatever it was, it must be huge, because the gaps between the bars

were more than enough for at least two people to walk through.

"Closer..." And he did, without bothering about the consequences. It just felt... natural for him

to follow those words "A little closer..." the voice urged. When Naruto was right in front of

the gate... "GRAHHHHH!" It roared angrily and a giant paw slammed against the bars with

so much force the entire sewer shook. As a giant pair of claws shot out between the bars,

nearly hitting him, Naruto jumped in shock, nearly fell to his ass.

"Shit..." Naruto exclaimed as a giant pair of blood red eyes appeared and started moving

closer until they revealed to belong to a huge fox with dark red furs "You... you're a Kitsune

youkai." Naruto stated in shock when he recognised its appearances from the books about

Youkai in his home's library. His eyes widened even further when he saw nine gigantic tails,

which were even larger than its own body, appeared from the shadows as they thrashed

absentmindedly behind it. While demon foxes weren't rare, there was only one nine tailed fox

he had ever heard about. "You're the Kyuubi." Naruto realised as he stared at the creature that

attacked his village nearly seventeen years ago and was responsible for the death of his

father.

"GRHHH! GRAAAAAAAAAAAAAHHHHHHH!" The gigantic fox roared, sending a

massive shockwave toward Naruto and blowing him away. Naruto gritted his teeth as he tried

to hang on, using his chakra to glue his hands and his feet to the ground, keeping him from

being slammed into the wall "GRAAHHHAHHAHAHAHHAHA!" Suddenly, roar turned

into a laugh, and then the fox started laughing so hard the whole sewer started rumbling with

its voice. "HAHAHAHAH!" Kyuubi continued to laugh as it rolled on the wet floor, but

strangely its furs didn't get wet by it.

Naruto was so shocked that he didn't even notice how feminine and girlish her voice had

become.

"Oh god, my stomach hurts..." The fox said after she had calmed down, raising one of its

paws to wipe her face "sorry... It's been awhile since I last pulled a prank on a human, ah...

your expression is priceless." Naruto blinked as the fox looked down at him arrogantly as if

he was just a fly "Did I scare you, scaredy cat?"

Naruto's expression changed from confusion and shock to angry and frustrated when she

called him a scaredy cat. He hated that word more than anything because his teammates used

to call him that when he was younger and was still a Genin. He didn't like to fight back then,

and his behaviours of avoiding the action were usually misunderstood as fears.

"You know what fox, fuck you," Naruto said, giving it his middle finger. The fox put down

its eight of its tails, leaving only the one in the middle back to respond "How are you even

alive? My father killed you, Kyuubi." he said, pointing his hand at Kyuubi.

"No, he didn't." the Kyuubi retorted "He was a powerful man, but I'm too strong for him to

kill me. You know it, right Incubus?" Naruto growled. So first, it wasn't dead. Second, it was

a female and last but not least, it was a youkai. He had thought the Kyuubi who attacked his

village was a mass of chakra with thoughts or something like that. He didn't know it was an

actual Youkai. Fox youkai was an extremely powerful race of demon, probably one of the

most powerful, and the more tails they had, the more powerful they were, with nine being the

highest amount of tails one could have, which made the fox locked behind the cage in front

of him one of the most powerful demons. She might be even stronger than his mother.

Hold on, Naruto thought, did his mother know about this? The villagers said it had been his

mother who had helped his father killing the creature. Did she know that it was a Youkai, and

did she know that it was still alive, imprisoned somewhere?

"Somewhere?" Naruto repeated the word in his mind "Hold on, where are we?"

"A secret prison under your home you mother built to lock me in." Naruto widened his eyes

in surprise. There was a place like that under... "Just kidding, we're in your mindscape."

"Why you stupid... my mindscape!?" Naruto exclaimed, now in shock "What do you mean

my mindscape, why are you locked inside my mindscape, unless..." Naruto gasped. It didn't

take it long for him to put one, two and three together "My father sealed you inside me, didn't

he?" It was so obvious. If you couldn't kill something but still wanted to keep it at bay, then

all you had to do was sealed away.

"And he lost his life doing so. Very noble, but very reckless I must say." Kyuubi said casually

"But lucky for you because I doubt you would get to fuck your mother with him around. A

young nameless incubus who gets to fuck one of the sexiest women out there every day, who

happens to be his mother... things like that you can't see every day."

"Okay, okay stop, I don't want to talk about it with you, alright? I'm still confused as hell

now." Naruto said as he held out his hand "Hold on a second, you didn't mess up anything in

here, did you?"

"Uh, hello?" Kyuubi said, tapping the bars with her tail "But I think my chromosomes are the

reason you still can't have children with anyone other than Eve. Really, that woman is a

breeding machine."

"WHAT!?" Naruto cried in shock "So it was you?" He had always thought about that. Why

couldn't he have any kids with his mother when he had been fucking and cumming inside her

for seven years?

"Sorry for being a female," Kyuubi responded with a deadpanned expression. "It's magical

biologist, actually. You will have to take an extra class to understand it."

"Alright." Naruto sighed, but he looked at her doubtfully "Can I trust you? You didn't lie, did

you?" While they were powerful, fox youkai was well known for their deceptive nature. They

simply loved to pull pranks, tell lies and make other people's life the worst ways possible.

"Actually, I lie." Kyuubi said, and Naruto was about to yell at her and then "Saying that is a

lie is actually a lie, though." Naruto fell randomly. His face nearly hit the ground.

"Okay okay, that's enough of your bullshit." Naruto said "Why am I here anyway? Did you

bring me here? Scratch that, you've been sealed inside me for nearly seventeen years, so why

not sooner? Why now?"

"I just woke up." Naruto nodded "This morning, actually..."

"So it was your voice I heard in my head." Naruto realised "I thought I had become crazy."

"Well, for your information, getting your soul removed from your body and sealed into

someone else wasn't a pretty process. It took me a lot to stay half-conscious in here. This

thing..." Kyuubi tapped on the gate again, at the spot behind the paper "have a lot of your

father's sealing techniques as well as your mother's spells on it to suppress me and my power,

keeping me from waking up too soon. Your mother is a very powerful succubus, so her spells

worked very well. That's why you didn't meet me sooner."

"Right, seem logical. I will trust you with this one." Naruto crossed his arms on his chest "So

you know my mother?"

"Anyone knows Kushina, she used to stay at my palace and sleep with my father and..."

"I don't need to know."

"Jealous?" Naruto glared at her "Anyway, I'm a pretty good friend with succubi like your

mother. Our natures simply go very well with each other. My best friend is also a succubus.

You know her."

Naruto widened his eyes slightly and remembered a conversation he had a few months ago.

"Well, I used to have a best friend who was really great at lying so yeah, I can recognise a

lying person from a mile away."

"Used to?"

"She disappeared a few years ago, saying it was necessary for her to become more human.

Her dream is to become human you see, her races isn't that beautiful in human eyes."

"You're Mira's best friend, the one who disappeared a few years ago." Naruto said in

realisation, looking at Kyuubi who nodded her head "But I don't understand, why do your

species want to become human anyway?"

"Why do sex demons need to have sex every day to stay alive?" Kyuubi responded with her

own question "It's a question we will never know how to answer correctly. I want to become

human because I want to become pretty like them, while my mother wanted to become

human because she wanted to be one of them. Each of us wants to become human for

different reasons. In the past, some of us have succeeded and thank to that they continue to

live their lives in happiness."

"Point taken." Naruto nodded "So I take that you..."

"Actually, I am working on it. There is no need for you to point that out." The nine tailed fox

said in annoyance "I still have a lot of..." She then looked at Naruto, her blood red eyes shone

dangerously.

"What was that? Why are you looking at me like that?" Naruto asked. He had a feeling that

she had come up with some evil plans to mess him up "If you're planning to..."

"You know what? I think you can help me with it." Kyuubi said, ignoring him "Aside from

releasing me, I think... you can help me become human, Naruto Uzumaki."

"Please don't tell me you're going to take my human essence. I read about you and what you

need to do to become human. You need human essence for it, don't you?" He also knew that

much like with succubi and life-force, once the essences dried out, he would die. However,

because it had nothing to do with immortality like life-, he would die, painfully, the moment

all of his essence got sucked out "Sorry, even if I wanted to help you, I had no intention of

dying. Freeing you and letting you take my essences will both kill me. My life is too good to

leave behind right now."

"Now now, hear me out and you will understand. You can help me because you are not a full

blooded human. You are a half human half sex demon, so you won't die even if I take all of

your human essences from your body because you still have demon essences inside of you to

keep you alive." She said, "Your other half will keep you alive because there is no 'human'

left inside you, you will temporary, physically, become a full blooded Incubus." Naruto

nodded. That actually did not sound so bad. Plus, he had always wanted to know what was it

like to be a full blood sex demon, to lust after women basically twenty four seven "I have

calculated your human essences need to replenish itself, based on your stamina, physical

conditions, diet..." how did she know about all that and calculate something out of them, he

had no idea "and realized it would only take you, at most, two hours to become a half demon

again."

"Well, it could have been worse." Naruto shrugged. Not twenty-four seven then "But why

would I want to do this? I mean... you are responsible for the death of my father and our

villagers seventeen years ago. It's not like you have done anything to me but, why should I

help you anyway?"

"In exchange for your essences and my freedom, I will give you three things in return."

"Uh...what?"

"First, it's power. I will give you my power when your life is in danger. I will also help you

get stronger." She then leant forward "Second is status. Of course, as the most powerful and

most respected youkai of my clan, my influence is unquestionable. Helping me mean that you

have done me a great favour, and I will make sure to help you raise your status in demon's

society, in the situation you need it." She then gave him a playful grin "And last but not least,

the best, pleasure. There are many ways for me to suck human essences out of a man's body,

but the second most common way is through sex. I will suck it out of you as we have sex

and..."

"Hah, sorry but... I will let you know that I'm not into bestiality, no thank you." Naruto shook

his head, answering casually.

"Then perhaps this form will suit your taste." With that, Kyuubi wrapped her tails around her

body, curving into a ball, which then reduced greatly in size. Naruto watched in amazement

as Kyuubi got smaller and smaller until she was nearly as tall as he was. Her tails, which

were still larger than her body, unwrapped themselves around and revealed one of the most

beautiful women he had ever seen in his life.

"You... are the one from my dream." Naruto said as he pointed his hand at her "You messed

up with my head, didn't you?" And she said she didn't do anything.

That's right. Kyuubi had a human form that looked exactly like the woman he had seen in his

dream, maybe even better. She was extremely beautiful, with blood red eyes and red hair with

long bangs framing her face. She also had another animalistic feature, being the fox ears on

her head.

She dressed in a sleeveless qipao, a kind of dress that was absolutely stunning, and sexy. It

was dark red in colour and extremely revealing, hugging her voluptuous body like a second

skin. It barely went down to her mid-thighs and was split very high at both sides, showing

much of her thighs and her hips. The qipao also had a huge boob window at the front that

went all the way down to her navel, showing a very generous amount of her skin as well as

her large cleavage. It was also rather obvious that she didn't wear any undergarments

"Like what you see?" Kyuubi asked him seductively "Didn't know that I have a human form,

did you?" Naruto shook his head "Well, for your information, I were born centuries ago and

have been trying to become human since I was twenty. I have taken quite a lot of essence

from human men, enough to give myself this form." She then put her hands on her ears

"Though, as you can see, my ears and tails are still here, but they make me cute, don't you

think?"

"I... guess." Naruto nodded.

"So, I will repeat it once more time for you." Standing in front of him, separated only by bars,

Kyuubi said with a smile "You release me from this prison and allow me to absorb your

human essence, temporary making you a full blood incubus for a couple of hours, but

bringing me one step closer to my goal, and in return, I will lend you my power, make you

stronger and remove my influence over your sperm so you can have children with your

lovers, mainly Kushina-obaa sama." She smirked, "It's not every day a deal like this is made,

Naruto-kun, so think carefully."

"Before I start thinking about it, care to repeat what you are going to do to drain human

essence from me again?" he asked, being taken over by curiosity.

"Normally, I will cast a spell on a man to drain their human essence, but in some special case,

I throw the my magic at men, letting it suck their essences away, killing them in the process.

The orb will give those essences to me once it returns." Naruto paled with a forced smile. He

opened his mouth to say, but she immediately interrupted him "However, because you're an

incubus, why not have it sex demons ways? I will suck it out of you through sex. I'm going to

have sex with you any place, any time you want in exchange for that rich essence flowing

inside your body. I might not be a succubus like them, but don't forget that my best friend is

the princess herself. You will never find a better partner than me."

That nearly made the deal. How could he, an incubus, refuse such an offer from someone as

beautiful as she was, especially when he can earn more than he would have to give?

"If I release you from this seal, would you attack my village?" Naruto asked, and Kyuubi

shook her head. Could he trust her? She was a fox youkai, a race known for their

mischievousness and playful natures. "Anyway, speaking of which, why did you attack my

village seventeen years ago anyway? Was it to collect more human essences?"

"That would be a story for later, all you need to know that I won't try to burn your village

down again." Kyuubi stated as she put a finger on her bottom lip, saying thoughtful "You

know what? Maybe I should give you a taste of what you will have if you choose to strike

this deal with me."

"You mean..."

"Time to prove your worth, incubus." Kyuubi said as she pushed her breasts together and

bent her back, giving him a generous view of her cleavage "I have seventeen years worth of

built of frustration inside of me, maybe you can help me get rid of them first before we think

about our deal."

After a moment, he made up his mind and took a step, then another and another... he would

never let this opportunity pass. He walked into the cage and stood in front of Kyuubi.

Standing this close, Naruto couldn't help but admire how good she smelt.

Kyuubi smiled "My name is Kurama, but call me what you want, I don't really care." She

said before making a come over gesture with her index finger "Now come here and have a

taste of these lips." Naruto didn't waste any time.

He stepped forward and wrapped his arms around her back, bringing her into a kiss. He

sucked on her lips, loving the feeling of them against his. Kurama then kissed him back,

before opening her lips and letting him invade her mouth for the first time. As their hands

entangled, Kyuubi took his hands and pushed them down her ass, where he immediately

filled them with as much supple fleshes of those incredible ass cheeks as possible.

"That's enough." Just as he was about to enjoy it, Kyuubi pushed him back, with enough

force to make his back hit one of the bars of her prison.

"Okay then." Naruto grinned "You like it?"

"Not the best I have ever had, but you know what you are doing, I like that." Kurama said,

raising his confidence "Now, onto the more important matter. If we have sex here, you need

to change our surroundings. I'm not going to do it in a sewer like this. This is your mindscape

so you can make it whatever you want. Just concentrate and use your imagination, and

remember to make the bars disappear or change into something else."

Naruto nodded and did it, concentrating and letting his imagination do the work. The sewer

shifted slightly before changing into a room, his room at Uzumaki Residence with a single

queen size bed appeared right behind Kurama. The bars had also disappeared, but he actually

replaced her prison with a gold choker with the kanji for seal in the middle that he put around

her neck, much to her amusement.

"Choker?"

"You want a collar instead?" Naruto countered with a smirk and Kyuubi put her hands on his

clothes.

"Point taken." Kyuubi said as she ripped open his shirt, the same she did with his pants,

freeing his cock "Well, I can definitely work with a cock like this." Kyuubi said while

nodding her head, grabbing his cock and stroking it much to his enjoyment. Her hand was

small but very soft. Looking at those pretty fingers that could barely go around his manhood

just made him want her to give him handjob every day. Naruto tried to approach her again,

but before he could get his hands on her again, Kurama squeezed his cock, causing him to

wince in pain "Now now, if we're going to do this, then we're going to do this my way, so

how about you keep those hands for yourself for now and let me see if you are a professional

incubus or just another horny animal." She loosened the grip, allowing Naruto to sigh in

relief. He almost thought she would rip his cock off right there.

"Enjoy yourself then." The nine tailed fox girl him a wink and continue to stroke his cock,

smiling slyly as she felt it harden in her hand.

"My my, you're seriously packed down here. It's rare to see an incubus with a cock like this."

She reached her hands out and cupped his balls, handling them with her fingers "No wonder

why those succubi out there cannot resist you."

"And I see you doing a fine job at it," Naruto said confidently, crossing her arms over his

chest.

"Don't get me wrong, I would love to take a man with these packages into my bedroom and

fuck his brain out every day, but you are actually not that appealing to me. Maybe it's because

I barely know you." She said, shrugging her shoulders "Right now, you're just another sex

entertainer like the rest of your species are in my eyes."

"Then ma'am, what do I need to do to change that?" Naruto asked with a smirk, putting his

hand on his chest and bowing his head a little. It didn't take it long for him to realise that

Kyuubi was the kind of woman who liked to be in charge and didn't want to be pushed

around by her man. Because all of his lovers, including his mother, had been very submissive

to him, it might turn out to be one of the best decisions he had ever made. Naruto knew he

had to play his card right in order to make the most out of what was about to happen.

"Of course..." Kyuubi said as she approached him, leaning her head forward so her lips could

nearly touch his "You will have to fulfil the role of a sex entertainer first." With that, she

actively kissed him while her hands continue to stroke his cock and play with his balls. He

kissed her back, and their tongues met again "There is a zipper on my back." She told him,

their lips barely separated. Smirking, Naruto reached his hands behind her back, going under

her hair and quickly found the zipper of her dress. Slowly pulling it down, Naruto made sure

he didn't touch her.

Releasing his cock, Kyuubi broke the kiss and took a small step back. Smiling seductively at

him, the Kyuubi grabbed the shoulder of her dress and pulled it down to her hips, freeing her

beautiful melons.

"Aren't they amazing?" Kurama asked teasingly as she took hold of her breasts with both

hands and pushed them together, mauling them right in front of him "Don't you want to suck

on these titties? To touch it and do whatever you want with it? These girls are begging you

for attention, you know?" As much as he wanted to do it, Naruto kept his composure and

stayed put, keeping his hands for himself. He knew that wasn't allowance. She was testing

him.

Then suddenly, her hand shot out and grabbed a fistful of his hair. Before he could even react,

she pulled him toward her, slamming his face into her cleavage.

"You like that? You like to bury your face and motorboat my tits like this?" Kurama asked as

she turned her body side to side, causing her tits to swing and hit him in his face she kept his

head between her breasts "You like big breasts, aren't you? Are my tits big enough to your

liking?" Her teasing was becoming too much for him to handle. His cock had become so hard

and horny that he could feel it oozing a huge glob of pre-cum. He had never been put this

kind of situation before, and it turned him on to no end. The fact that he could not touch her

however he wanted only made him want her more.

"Do your worst, vixen," Naruto said with a confident smirk once Kyuubi had removed his

head from her cleavage. His hands were still kept firmly at his sides.

Smirking, Kurama then pulled his head toward her again, but this time, she crashed her lips

against his, kissing him raw and hungrily. Her free hand quickly found its way back to his

cock, but unlike before, she didn't hold anything back. She stroked his cock hard and fast,

causing Naruto to moan into her mouth as she shoved her tongue down his throat.

She was a woman who had experiences dominating men, Naruto realised. Combining it with

her mischievous nature, she knew just the way to make her partner go crazy with lust. He

knew he was losing it, but he had to hold on. Losing an opportunity to fuck a woman like her

would be a huge blow to his pride.

"You like that, don't you?" She asked in a seductive tone. She then let go of his cock and

grabbed his hair with both hands. Keeping it like that, Kurama then turned them around and

pushed him down to the bed onto his back, following him as she straddled his waist with

ease. Taking hold of her full breasts, Kurama started rubbing them against his head, up and

down, left to ride, suffocating his face in her heavenly soft breasts, brushing her nipples over

his lips before she actually tried to push the right one into his mouth. "Excuse me, did you

say something?" The nine tailed fox girl asked as she let half of his poked out between her

breasts. Actually, he didn't say anything. It was because he couldn't breathe when she pushed

her breasts so hard against his face like that.

It wasn't that much of a big deal because he could hold his breath very long, but he was

finding it very hard to keep himself from opening his mouth and starting to suck on her

nipple. He also really wanted to breathe in her delicious scent, but the moment he did that he

would be suffocated to death.

"Aren't you full of surprises, Naruto? I thought you would lose it and try to have your way

with me already." She said, releasing his face from its heavenly prison. Naruto inhaled deeply

in relief "You have a lot of will control for an incubus as horny as you always are. Is it

because you're only half sex demon, or is it because you're just that good?"

"Why don't you stop fooling around, let me take over and find out yourself?" Naruto asked,

smirking challengingly.

"Boy..." Kurama said as she playfully flicked his nose "you are so full of yourself, aren't

you?" She then put her hands on the side of his head, forcing him to look away from her

breasts, which he had been looking at the entire time. She gave him a deep kiss before

standing up, reaching for the dress around her waist and pushing it down to her feet.

Fully nude, Kurama picked the piece of clothing up and dropped it on his face. Naruto

quickly removed it from his face so he could get the first, real look at her naked body. He

wasn't disappointed when he saw Kurama standing above him in her nude glory. She really

had a body of a goddess.

"Push yourself up, boy," Kurama said with a smirk, putting one hand on her hip and making a

come over gesture with the other. He did what he was told, and when he was high enough,

Kurama's hand shot out and grabbed a fistful of his hair, much to his displeasure again

"Enlighten me with your skills then." With that declaration, she pulled his face toward her

crotch and slammed her pussy into his mouth. Looking at Kyuubi for a moment, Naruto then

broke eye contact and opened his mouth, bringing out his tongue to give her fat pussy a lick.

The nine tailed fox moaned as his tongue went to work, greedily licking her pussy as it

flowed with her arousal. He parted his mouth wide, slightly pushing his tongue into her

pussy, and started slurping at Kyuubi plump, hairless cunt, lapping up her sweet juice.

Wanting more, Naruto shoved his tongue and invaded her pussy for the first time, licking his

way around her walls, causing Kyuubi to moan and gasp loudly in pleasure as Naruto ate her

out. When he licked her clitoris and used his lips to nip on it, her eyes snapped wide open and

her mouth formed a perfect O. He pleasured her pussy like a pro, boosting her arousal, and

causing her to flow like a river into his hungry mouth.

"Oh god... right there, that's the spot." Kurama said as she threw her head back in pleasure,

drool running down the corners of her mouth as Naruto shoved his tongue as far into her cunt

as she could, managing to find a weak spot, which he attacked rapidly without hesitation.

Then suddenly, her wall clenched tightly around his tongue, and with a loud moan, she came

into his mouth, flooding it with her juice. Naruto swallowed everything, gulping mouthful

after mouthful of the sexual nectar down his throat without spilling a drop. It took Kurama

awhile to calm down, when she did, Naruto gave her pussy a kiss and took his tongue back.

"To think... a weakling can make me cum this good." Kurama said as she wiped the drool

away from her chin.

"Do I deserve a reward then?" He asked, smirking at his accomplishment.

"What do you want then? Free fuck or free touch?" without hesitation, Naruto shot up and

wrapped his arms around her waist before pulling her down to sit on his laps, facing away

from him. His hands then went for her breasts, and he squeezed them harshly, unleashing the

full might of his frustration of her mountains of fleshes.

"Free touch, because at this rate, we're going to fuck each other anyway." Naruto said as he

twisted her nipples "God, your body feels so good." He wasn't trying to flatter her or

anything. Her body actually felt that good. Her skins were soft and smooth, while her breasts

were like two massive marshmallows that had that ability to defy the law of gravity. When he

turned her around to get her on his laps, he had taken a quick glimpse at her booty and was

amazed by the perfect heart shape of it.

"Smart. I like that." Kurama said as she turned her head around and entangled her tongue

with his, battling it out for a moment before bringing each other into another passionate kiss.

Kyuubi could only moan into the kiss as Naruto roamed his hands freely around her body but

always had one hand on her breast, her nipple pinched between his index and middle fingers.

As they kept on doing that for awhile, Kurama could feel his pre-cum on her back. His cock,

which was being squeezed between them, had become painfully hard and swelled greatly in

size because of the lack of release "You know what? Kyuubi said as she took her tongue back

from his mouth "I bet my inside feels better. Wanna have a try?" Seeing Naruto nodding his

head stupidly, Kurama giggled and grabbed his hands, removing them from her chest before

standing up just enough for her pussy to be right above his big hard cock. She turned around,

facing him. Knowing what she was about to do, Naruto decided to lay down, getting himself

into a more comfortable position.

Licking her lips openly, Kurama then reached her hands down and parted the lips of her

pussy with one hand before positioned the tip of his cock at her pussy with the other. Then,

slowly, she pushed herself down, taking his cock in and earning moan from both of them. The

natural lubrication of her love juice made it easy for her to smoothly slide his cock in, and

she only stopped when she had had two third of his dong stuffed inside her pussy. Her

normally flat belly now had a big, long bulge in it.

"So big~" Kurama moaned as she raised herself and then slowly pushed down again, her back

arched as she repeated it over and over. Grinning stupidly, Naruto reached her hands out and

put them on Kurama's womanly hips, loving the feelings of her amazing pussy around his

cock. It clenched so hard around him he thought Kurama would rip it off any second "It's

time to be the animal, boy." With that declaration, Kurama put her hands on the top of her

head and slammed her hips down, taking all fifteen inches of his steel hard cock into her

pussy. The tip of his cock punched through her cervix and took its place in her womb.

Not even bother to give herself time to get used to the size of his dick, Kurama resumed

fucking her pussy on his cock, rapidly slamming her ass onto his pelvis. Without anything to

hold them back, her breasts bounced and swayed freely as Kyuubi fucked herself on his cock,

riding it to her heart content.

Kurama then stopped bouncing and started sliding her cunt back and forth on him while

leaning back with her hands resting on his thighs. After a moment, she went back to fuck

herself on his cock, placing her hands on his chest, feeling her tight cunt clenching even

tighter around him as she came, wracking her body with pleasure. Seeing an opportunity,

Naruto stopped her from moving with his hands on her hips and started fucking his cock up

her horny little pussy relentlessly. His long erection appeared and disappeared into her tight

snatch as he moved his hip flexibly. Kurama was delirious as she kept on cumming, his

thrusts prolonging her orgasm and bringing her to then next before she could even calm

down.

"Not so tough now, aren't you?" Naruto smirked as his hands went behind her and slid down

her ass. Taking a firm grip on her supple ass cheeks, the incubus started slamming her down

while simultaneously thrusting his cock up, penetrating her pussy with vigour, bringing

Kurama to a new height of pleasure.

"Fuck! You're so... fucking good at this!" Her voice came out warped, profoundly altered by

the cock reaming her open "Here, you deserve it." The fox girls took hold of her boobs and

offered her nipples to his mouth. His head immediately shot forward and took in one of her

nipples.

The two stayed like that for the next forty-five minutes, neither said a word to each other. His

mouth was being kept pussy by her nipples while hers was too busy moaning and screaming

in pure bliss. He fucked her tirelessly, his cock penetrating her pussy without stopping.

Kurama was delirious, never in her life had she met anyone who had the balls to fuck her like

him. Incubus like him usually too scared of her to even think about moving their hips, and yet

Naruto was fucking her like he was his bitch.

Several minutes later, Kurama could feel his prick starting to swell. Knowing that he was not

going to pull out, Kurama braced herself for the biggest load of her life.

Then, with a throaty grunt, Naruto buried his cock into her pussy and came, shooting an

impossibly large load into Kurama, directly into her womb, turning it into an overflowing

container of his gooey spunk. She gritted her teeth hard and tried to stop herself from

cumming, but in the end, she still failed miserably.

When her belly started swelling, the red-haired fox girl widened her eyes in shock when she

felt his cumming cock starting to move inside her belly. Picking up his speed, he began to

fuck his dick into her while it was still unloading thick loads of hot cum like a broken water

faucet. Kurama threw her head back and her tongue shot out her mouth as she came, hard. It

was too much. She had never had this kind like that before. The new experience was turning

her on so much she just wanted to keep doing it with him forever. As he fucked her like that,

he also pulled a lot of cum out with him, making a mess on his thighs, his cock, ball-sack and

the spot between his legs, but it was nothing compare to the sperm he kept pumping into her

every time he thrust his cock in. It became too much, and her whole body collapsed on top of

him, causing her nipple to be pulled out of his mouth as their breasts were mashed between

them.

Eventually, the force of his orgasm softened and Naruto stopped cumming after that. Sighing

longingly in satisfaction, the blonde dropped his ass to the bed and released his hold from

Kurama's ass. By no means was it one of the best orgasms, but it was close to one of the best

he had ever had. The fox girl on his chest was also breathing hard. Her body kept jerking

randomly even after her orgasm was over.

"How was that? Cannot keep up?" Naruto asked as he looked at Kurama, whose face was

right next to his. "You want some more?"

However, Naruto was taken completely off guard as Kurama moved faster than he ever could

and found himself rather dizzy after her tails extended greatly in length and wrapped

themselves around his wrists, ankles, torso, and his neck before lifting him into the air,

holding him upside down.

"The hell?" Naruto asked as his arms were forced outstretched and his legs were spread eagle

by her tail. He opened his mouth to speak, but the tail around his neck wrapped several more

times around him, covering the lower of his face, muffling his voice. He struggled but found

himself unable to move an inch.

"Of course I want more, how could I not want more?" Kurama said as she pushed herself up

while his cum was steadily flowing out of her pussy. She wasn't a succubus, so she couldn't

absorb it like them and had to scoop them out to make her pussy normally flat again "What a

waste! But it can't be help, since I don't want to get fat, or look fat." She said seriously as she

fingered her pussy while looking at the puddle of cum between her legs. The erotic display

made his cock twitch and throb with needs.

"Hmm... HMM..."

"Excuse me, but did you say something?" Kurama asked in mock surprise as she stood up

and looked at him. One second she was dead tired, the next she stood up as if nothing had

happened. She might have the ability to recover faster than he was. "Why don't you just be a

good boy and let me take care of you?" she shot her hand out and grabbed his heavy sack of

testicles, not hard enough to bust his nuts but enough to make him feel pain "You will be a

good boy, will you?" she asked, bringing her tongue out to lick his cock, which was pointing

straight at her face. Wincing in pain, Naruto nodded his head, and while his neck could not

move, he hoped she knew it. Fortunately for him, Kurama did and she then loosened her grip

on his balls and started giving them the best message they had ever had.

"From this point, I'm in control, got it?" Putting her hands on his thighs, Kurama then parted

her lips and took in the bulbous head of his cock, swirling her tongue around the glans.

Moaning at the taste, Kurama shivered in desire and shrunk her mouth onto his long and hard

dick, before pulling back after the tip had hit the back of her throat, sucking lightly along the

way. Popping his cock out her mouth, Kurama then leant forward, pushing his cock

downward (or upward with him) with her body and allowing it to travel between her huge

breasts as she filled her mouth with one of his giant testicles.

He had cum like a broken water hose just a few seconds ago and yet his scrotum was still

full, even bloated with sperm. Holding her breasts with both hands, she pushed then together

and wrapped her tits around his cock.

"Everything down here looks so painful." Kurama said in mock concern as she looked at his

balls while she was dragging her tits on his cock "I am a superior demon. I am not supposed

to do this with a lesser one, but I have my pride as a woman, and a woman cannot leave her

man in a state like this." She said, trailing her tongue from his testicles to the base of cock

and then all the way down his fifteen inches of steel hard man meat, just in time to let a huge

glob of pre-cum land on her tongue "I shall give you my best here, and you make sure to cum

a lot, okay?" she said, giving him a sexy wink before opening her mouth and taking his cock

down her throat. Instead of stopping at a few inches, Kurama pushed steadily, cramming the

entire spear of manhood down her throat. Her lips touched his balls, and she started humming

playfully, causing her pharynx to vibrate around his dick.

'His cock taste so good." Kurama moaned as she began to pop her head back and forth on his

cock, taking full control of the situation. She was no succubus, so she didn't have the natural

ability to determine the quality of a man's penis and sperm accurately, but she had enough

experiences to tell that he was one of the best there was, and not just because it was big and

full of life. Kushina had given birth to a wonderful demon, she must admit.

Aside from Mira, her friends at the demon realms would probably laugh at her face if they

found out she was going to have a purely sexual relationship with an incubus since the race

of sex demons was usually looked down by the more powerful demons, but who cared

anyway? It's not like she gave a damn about them after everything. Plus, she was the stronger,

probably the strongest, their opinions would never affect her decision. He was a man that

could give her what she wanted. Much like his sperm, the essences of his human side were

extremely rich. He was the shortcut to her dream, the dream of getting rid of the form of a

gigantic fox forever and taking on the full appearance of a human woman.

In just fifteen minutes of receiving her wonderful blowjob, Naruto grunted and busted his

nuts directly down her throat, his cock throbbed and jerked as a massive amount of cum

travelled their way through its length before being shot directly down her gut. Moaning,

Kurama let him cum like that for a moment before pulling back until just the massive head

rested on her tongue. The next load was shot into her mouth barely a second later, and filled it

completely, causing her cheeks to bloat out as she tried to contain it. She desperately tried to

swallow, but the next load made it impossible for her to gulp it all down. A lot of cum was

spilt from the corners of her mouth, and coated upper slopes of her breasts, flowing into her

cleavage. Eventually, the large amounts of cum forced Kurama to withdraw her mouth from

the erupting cock, leading the next blasts catching her directly in the face. Free, his cock

twitched and swung, firing blasts of cums wildly, hitting Kurama in several spots of her body.

Kurama giggled excitedly as she raised her hands to shield her face away from the huge rope

of cum, but little she could do to protect the rest of her body.

When it had finally died off, Kurama was covered in his cum from head to toe, with her face

and tits being the parts that got the most. After nearly two minutes of cleaning herself,

Kurama gulped them the rest down and let out a content sigh, completely cum free.

"Delicious, you sure can come a lot." With that, she reached her hands out and touched his

balls "Ara, you're full again, cannot leave it like this, can I?" she then turned around, lifting

Naruto up and putting her hands on her ass, patting it lightly "Would you like to try some

anal? You have to test everything before purchasing the merchandise, don't you?"

"HELL YEAH!" Naruto cried when Kyuubi removed her tail from his mouth, but whatever

he was about to say was completely muffed when she wrapped it back.

"Okay, we shall do it like this..." Kurama said as she lied down on her stomach and

positioned Naruto on top of her, allowing him to straddle her womanly hips before she moved

his hands near her breasts on the bed. She removed the tail around her torso but refused to let

go of the rest, making Naruto wonder what she was up to "Now, you are going to fuck me

like this. Work those hips of yours and give a good time." Naruto then widened his eyes when

he felt something poked against his asshole "That's the tip of my tail you are feeling. Try to

do anything and I will let you experience anal sex with something that is as big as your

torso." Pushing herself onto her elbow and removing her tail around his neck and face,

Kurama turned around and wrapped one hand around his neck before turning her head around

to look at him "Remember, work those hips and no funny business."

"You are one crazy woman, aren't you?" He asked, causing her to smirk "Just you wait till I

get my hands on you again, naughty vixen." He leant down and kissed her, causing Kurama

to smile before returning it.

"Suit yourself..." Kurama smirked as she broke the kiss "Alright, do it... and take it slow, I

have never taken anything that big in my ass before."

"Who were your past lovers? Imps?" Naruto teased but had to immediately move his head to

the side when Kurama swung her arm around to elbow him in the face. With that kind of

speed combining with her unholy physical strength, she used could easily behead him with a

move like that. He was in his mindscape, so Naruto believed he couldn't die, but he bet it's

going to be extremely painful because he could feel everything normally "Relax, I was just

teasing, no need to be serious." He said, chuckling nervously with sweats pouring down his

forehead as he felt the tip of her tail poking against his asshole.

"And here I am trying to be nice to you. You can easily physically satisfy a girl, but clearly,

you don't know how to please them mentally. I thought Mira or your mother had taught you

better than that." Kurama said casually as she put her chin on her hand "Anyway, let's

continue, since I'm stuck with you for awhile, I will personally care of that later." She said,

wiggling her ass. Naruto smirked, moving his hips down to avoid her tail, at the same time

dropping his heavy cock between her firm ass cheeks, grinding back and forth slowly.

Running out of patience, Kurama reached a hand back and lined his cock up against her

sphincter, allowing him to push it in.

Like she had requested, he went slow, giving her time to adjust to the size of his cock.

"Fu...fuck... fuck..." the nine tailed fox girl moaned as she gripped the bed sheet tightly. Even

for someone like her, it was still quite painful. It might be even worse than when she first

took a dick up her ass.

"Shit, Kurama..." Naruto cursed as he tried to push more of his cock in. "your ass is so tight

around my dick." As half of his dick was inside her ass, Naruto felt like cumming right there,

but controlled his urge and held back as much as he could. Kurama could feel her pussy

trembling from the pain, and also the pleasure of her anal tube getting stretched.

When Kurama's painful groans became lustful moan, he knew it was time for the action.

Grinning from ear to ear, Naruto started pushing more of his cock into her ass, increasing the

speed of his hips. With smooth and continuous thrusts, it didn't take him long to get all fifteen

inches of his manhood into her ass.

"Oohhwoowow! Fuck! Aaah!" Kurama moaned deliriously as his long, thick cock invaded

her bowels.

"How do you like that now Kurama? You like my cock up your ass? You like that?" Naruto

grunted with each thrust, as he pulled back far enough so only the head of his dick was still in

her anus before he pounded it right back in as far as he could go, slapping his hips against her

ass. Her hair became a mess as Naruto rocked her body back and forth with each pump of his

hips. She also started sweating, giving her beautiful skin a sexy oily glint.

Naruto stepped up the pace, fucking her harder and faster, causing Kurama to shudder and

cum like she had never cum before, wetting the bed underneath her. Naruto, as he continued

to slam his hips against her ass, couldn't help but notice her tails didn't loosen in the slightest,

still keeping his arms and legs where they were. The only good thing about it was that the

one that had been poking against his ass had joined the rest of her tails on the bed.

She must be the woman who had the biggest ego he had ever met in his life.

"Ohhhhh fuuuccck!" Kurama screamed as her pussy spasmed squirted on the bed beneath her

when Naruto started hammering into her ass even harder. Her ass clenched and writhed

around his cock, becoming impossibly tight, so tight that he couldn't move without putting

more strength into his pounding.

Then suddenly, he stopped moving his hip and let two third of his cock reside inside her ass.

Just as Kurama started to come down to her senses, Naruto roared and painted her insides

with another unholy load of thick hot sperm.

"Fuck Kurama you stupid slut, take this! Take my cum!" Naruto cried, holding nothing back

as he came to his heart's content. Her ass clenched tightly, milking more and more of his

sperm out his cock. It felt so good that Naruto didn't bother to continue. He stayed like that so

he could enjoy the pleasure in bliss.

When he was almost done, Naruto pulled his cock out and let it rest on her ass, spraying a

couple more shots onto her butts and her curvy back.

"Do you want to decide it now?" Kurama asked breathlessly as she turned her head around to

look at him "or you want to have a few more tries?"

"You will have your answer when you release me."

Line Break

"This isn't possible..." Kushina said finally, finally breaking the uncomfortable silence. When

she walked into his room with her granddaughters and possible future daughter in law

following closely behind her, she didn't expect to see Kurama, the Kitsune youkai that killed

her husband with her own claw, sitting on her son's bed with Naruto sleeping peacefully on

her laps. She was running one hand through his hair, and the other on his hard cock, which

stood right up and was dripping a fair amount of pre-cum from the tip.

She was shocked, while Mira was excited to see her best friend, alive and well. Evelyn and

Kaguya, meanwhile, were looking at the beautiful woman questionably. The twin was

amazed when they saw Kurama, because of the fox tails and the ears, which they found very

cute, but were clearly the evidence of her power.

"Obaa-sama, who is she?" Evelyn asked, turning to her grandmother.

"Shh, Naruto is sleeping. He's very tired, so shut your mouth." Evelyn immediately slapped

her hands on her mouth while looking at the red haired fox woman in horror. Kurama's voice

was also so cold it lowered the temperature in the room and sent chill down her spine. For

some reason, just her presence alone brought fear into the succubi twin. She then looked at

Kushina and greeted her in a very small and gentle voice "It's good to see you again,

Kushina-obaa sama." Kushina said nothing, only openly glaring at her "It's been awhile,

Mira. How have you been?"

Before Mira could open her mouth, Kushina raised a hand, stopping her from answering the

nine tailed fox's question.

"How did you get out, Kurama?" She asked. Her son was still alive, so the two of them was

still bonded one way or another "How did you break out of my husband's seal?"

"I didn't. Naruto let me out." The fox girl answered "I showed him the way, and he released

me from the seal. I must admit... I didn't expect him to succeed on his first try. He must have

his father's talents."

"You are lying. You tricked him, didn't you?" Kushina growled. She knew Kurama had

wakened up when her son told her he had heard a voice in his head that morning, but she

didn't expect Kurama to regain her power fast enough to break herself out of the spells she

had put on her seventeen years ago. She had thought her spells and her husband's sealing

techniques were enough, but clearly, she was dead wrong. She had underestimated Kurama,

one of the most powerful demons out there "There's no way he would do that."

"Oh, he would... and he did." Kurama said slyly "But of course, it was after I had given him

one of the best times of his life."

"You had sex with him?" Mira asked, smiling brightly "Then you can join us..."

"No, she cannot Mira." Kushina snapped "Kurama... she killed my husband. She killed

Naruto's father." All three girls widened their eyes and gasped in shock, especially Mira, who

was Kurama's best friend "Naruto's life is in danger, we have to..."

"For your information, I have no intention of killing him, not now, not ever..." Kurama

interrupted "He is the one who can bring me to my dream."

"You dream?" Kushina asked before widening her eyes "Did you take his essences? You

bitch..." She gritted her teeth in anger and changed into her succubus form, but before she

could do anything, Kurama said.

"Ah, don't let your hatred for me cloud your judgment, obaa-sama. You're smart, so you

should know that even if Naruto's human essences were sucked dry, he wouldn't die because

of the demon blood flowing inside of his veins." She said, looking at Naruto as she gently

stroked his cheeks "There was a first time for everything. He wasn't used to having his human

essences suck out of his body, so he passed out, but as you can see... this part of him is still

fully awake." She pointed to his cock.

"What do you want?" Kushina asked, growling in annoyance.

"I want to become human." She said simply "I want to get rid of my ugly fox form and

become the woman I have always wanted to be. Because of this seal..." she pointed to the

choker around her neck "I cannot leave Naruto without killing him, so why not get him to

help me? He has a lot for me to take, and he regenerates them in less than two hours, after

all."

"Uhmm..."

Suddenly, everyone became quiet when Naruto started to stir and eventually woke up.

"Kurama... where am I?" He looked around and sat up, noticing his mother, daughters and

girlfriend "Kaa-chan, everyone is all here?" He asked, yawning tiredly before looking at

Kurama "Uhm, everyone, this is..." but before he could finish his sentence, he fell back.

"Naruto-kun!" Kushina said worriedly as she runs to her son's side with the others.

"Oh, careful, you're still recovering Naruto." Kurama said as she caught him "You weren't

used to having your human essences sucked out of you yet, so it's naturally for you to feel

tired."

"Oh, okay then," Naruto said tiredly.

"You will feel better next time." Kurama winked.

"There won't be a next time, bitch." Kushina snapped "I'm not going to let you do that again."

"Kaa-chan, it's alright," Naruto said, raising his hand and putting it on her shoulder.

"Naruto, she killed your father." Kushina glared at Kurama, who was sitting next to her "She

also killed a lot of civilians that day."

"Unintentionally..." He said, dropping his head back to the bed "Evelyn, Kaguya... can you

two suck my dick? I think I will recover faster with some sexual energy."

"Of course, daddy/tou-sama." The girls quickly went to work, and instantly, Naruto started

feeling a little bit better.

"Hold on a second..." Mira said as she looked at the group in front of her "Can anyone what

is going on? Why is Kura-chan being accused of Naruto's father's murder? Why does she

appear here all of sudden? What do mean seal? I thought you two were good friends."

"Not anymore, Mira." Kushina shook her head before looking at her son "What do mean

unintentionally? Naruto, you cannot trust her. She is known as the most distrustful demon for

a reason."

"Kushina, I know who she is. But please trust me this time and listen to her, alright?" Naruto

said loudly "Kurama, can you please tell her your story?"

"Sure, because you ask so nicely," Kurama said with a foxy smile while Kushina continuing

to glare at the superior demon.

Naruto sighed as he closed his eyes. From now on, his life was going to get even more

eventful.

End of chapter 14

party and meetings

Chapter 15

Party and meetings

"Hm... Naruto, is my butt too big?"

"Nah, I think they are perfect, Kura-chan."

"Saying that, and your eyes are only on my breasts. Do you like them that much, Naruto?"

"Of course, they are the best Kura-chan."

"You love to have them around you cock, don't you?"

"Seriously, you don't need to ask to know the answer for that question."

Sitting on Naruto's bed with a scroll that she wasn't reading in hands, Kushina could only

growl in annoyance as she watched Kurama openly flirting with her son, who was making

himself very comfortable on the sofa by the window, naked from the waist down with his

girlfriend Mira kneeling between his thighs, sucking and slurping noisily on his cock. He was

reading a book he found in the library of their family. It was a porno novel, which magically

allowed the readers to feel the pleasure the main character was feeling, as long as they are

still reading it. It was written by an incubus author, about a young man adventure to gather

the largest harem in existence.

"Which one do you think is better for me, Naruto?" Kurama asked as she held up two pieces

of clothing, both red in color "Thong or G-string." Naruto looked thoughtful. He couldn't

decide because both would look extremely erotic on her. Kurama was standing in front of the

mirror of her room, fully clothed in her usual dress but had a mountain of new clothes next to

her, things that she had asked the maids to buy for her. Unfortunately, they could not disobey

the wish of someone who was far more superior to them.

That, and Naruto had been spending his night with her for the last couple of days, leaving

Kushina and the others with his clones. Because he had shown his sexual concern to them in

the form of his clones, which were particularly himself, she and everyone had no problem

letting him spend his night somewhere else, with someone else. However, when this someone

else was Kurama, the Kyuubi no Kitsune of the realm of demons, it was a different matter

entirely. She wanted to have sex with Naruto, fine, let she had all the mind-scrambling fucks

she wanted, but Kushina was afraid that she might try to do something to Naruto. There was

a reason while they were good friends in the past, she had never trusted a word Kurama said

unless she had seen all the evidences.

"You like this outfit, Naruto?" Kurama asked as she swung around, having gotten change

right in front of him. She was dressed in an extra revealing dancer outfit, consisting of a

black bra like top that was only covering her nipples and matching color bottom that were

just a skimpy thong, which had a thin, see-through cloth attracted to the hiplines. She also

donned a fair amount of gold jewelry, like necklaces, earrings, armbands, wristbands with

small diamond chains around her waist and her right thigh. It was the signature dress of the

most high-class group of dancers of the demon realm, who, obviously were succubi and only

danced for the highest class demons. Kurama was fit as fuck, so she wore it even better than

the succubi.

"Damn, you look gorgeous Kurama." Naruto praised with a grin, finally taking his eyes away

from the book he was reading "You know what? Why don't you show me some moves in that

outfit?" He requested, running his hands through Mira's hair as she deepthroated him.

Kurama smiled, and started dancing, swaying her hips as she raised her hands into the air.

She had been trained in the art of sexual dancing in the past (mind you, she was a friend with

high-class succubi like the former queen and the current princess herself), so Kushina

wouldn't feel surprised if she managed to make Naruto blow his load just by dancing.

Kushina was worried, because Kurama was a powerful demon, one of the strongest with a

massive ego to boost. Naruto, while he was powerful in his own right, was still way, way

weaker than Kurama. There was no way a demon like her would agree to dance for him and

have sex with him (normally, it was the other way around) unless she was planning

something and trying to get something from her son. Knowing Kurama, she definitely was.

She said she was controlled to attack Konoha by an Uchiha who wore an orange mask and a

black cloak with red clouds patterns. She was resting near Iwa when he appeared and took

control over her mind. Usually, she would never trust a word Kurama told her, after

everything that had happened, but because her husband had fought a man like that a couple of

days before the attack, and the same day Naruto was born, plus Kurama was rather violent

that night unlike her playful nature, she was afraid the fox was telling the truth. However, if

that was the truth, Kushina was worried, because there was only one Uchiha she knew

capable of using Sharingan to control a demon at Kurama's caliber.

Maybe she should talk to Mikoto about this. She was an Uchiha, so she might know

something. For now, she needed to keep a close eye on Kurama and make sure that she wasn't

going to try something funny to her son.

"Hm... this dress should work fine I guess." Kurama said as she held an elegant black dress at

her chest, standing in front of the mirror completely naked, fully aware of the fact that

Naruto's eyes were on her huge ass. If it weren't for Mira who was sucking him off, Kurama

bet that he would immediately jump on her and thrust his cock into the place where the sun

didn't shine before starting to fuck the life out of her. She had to admit, though, she wanted

him to do it, so she could put him in his place and fuck him instead. It was the game the two

of them had been playing the past couple of days after all "Naruto, what..."

"I'm cumming, Mira!" Naruto growled and threw the boo away to grab Mira's head with both

hands as he thrust his hips forward, burying his fifteen inches cock into her mouth balls deep

before hosing his cum down her stomach, filling her full with just the first shot. Groaning,

Naruto dropped his ass down the sofa, pulling Mira's head down with him and continued to

shoot his load into her.

"Oh well, I guess I will surprise you then." Kurama said as she went to her clothes and picked

a new one to try out. Some are modest, some are sexy, some are elegant, some are both... but

the majority of them were extremely erotic. They would definitely make her look like a slut

begging to be fucked and fucked hard in everyone's eyes. But again, she didn't care. She had

seen the dress code around Uzumaki Residence, so she had decided to 'blend in'.

"Fuha!" Mira breathed out with her mouth and made a sound in satisfaction as she released

Naruto's cock from her mouth, gulping down the last dose of sperm that she managed to suck

out of his cock "Your sperm is always so delicious, Naruto-sama." She said with an innocent

smile, which made Naruto hard to believe that she was the girl that could strip and bend

down with her ass in the air for his cock anytime.

"I'm glad that you like it, Mira." Naruto smiled as Mira kissed the tip of his cock.

"Hey boss!" The doors of this room were opened and four naked clones walked in, carrying

the unconscious Evelyn and Kaguya with them "Evelyn and Kaguya passed out, we thought

you should know."

"You guys ambushed them in their bathroom, didn't you?" Naruto asked, causing the clones

to laugh nervously "Let them rest on my bed." Naruto said as Mira rubbed her face on his

cock, smiling lovingly as she inhaled the musky scent of his manliness.

"Okay boss." The clones nodded and carried his daughters to the bed, where they gently put

them down.

"Kaa-chan, can you take care of them for me?" Naruto asked, looking at his mother. The

clones immediately got excited and turned their heads to look at Kushina, hoping to hear her

say yes.

"Sure, why not?" The red haired Succubus shrugged and rolled up the scroll in her hands.

Putting it away, she stood up from the bed and approached the group of clones "Anything for

my son... or sons, in this matter." She said, kissing one of them before moving to the other.

Her hands found two cocks, and she didn't waste more time to start stroking them "C'mon,

let's go to my room. The faster we get there, the sooner you boys get to fuck me." She said

seductively before making her way out of the room, pulling two clones with her by their

cocks while the rest followed closely behind her.

"Have fun, Kaa-chan."

"You know I will." She said with a smile "Oh, also, don't forget to remember the Succubi

District to see our new recruits. The new girls would love to meet their real master for the

next time." Succubi District was the name of the area where the succubi who were working

for Uzumaki Residence lived. Occasionally, Naruto visited that place all by himself and then

he returned to his room more satisfied than ever. It was a small version of Ygvar, the city of

sex demons, and literally lust hell on earth.

"Of course, kaa-chan." Naruto smirked and Kushina left with the clone after that.

"Where do you want me next, Naruto-sama?" Mira asked as she stood up. Naruto's eyes

followed her voluptuous form as she removed the rest of her skimpy outfit.

"Come sit on my lap." Naruto answered with a smile, allowing Mira to straddle him, settling

comfortable in his lap, his still hard cock nestled between in her plump ass. She put her hands

on his shoulder and leaned forward to kiss him, hungrily sucking on his tongue as he pushed

it into her mouth. As she continued to make out with Naruto, she positioned his cock at the

entrance to her pussy, and with a sexy whimper after the large head had parted the lips of

pussy and went in Mira slammed her ass down and took all fifteen inches in one plunge.

Entangling her tongue with his, Mira rolled her hips a little bit, working his thick shaft with

her cunt. Pulling back she set her legs underneath her and started to fuck her pussy onto her

lover's cock as Naruto's hands reached around and took a hold of Mira's amazing bubble ass

before he started to move his hips up, fucking his long dong into Mira's tight pussy.

"Do you want me to cast the spell, Mira?"

After Kurama had casted a spell to remove the effects of her chromosomes on his

spermatozoon, his chances of knocking his lovers up had increased a lot. However, in order

to make sure that Naruto and his clones wasn't going to knock up every single girl within

Uzumaki Residence at the same time and create a whole army of sex demons from them,

Kushina had taught him a spell that reduced the fertilization quality of his sperm to almost

zero, even lower than before. Even though he wanted to have a lot of kids, it would be

troublesome to suddenly have hundreds of them.

Every clone within the house had that spell put on them, but the original Naruto didn't,

meaning the chance of getting pregnant after being fucked by the original was very high. Of

course, he could cast that spell on himself so he could cum inside without the risk of

knocking up his girls. Mira or his mother would love to have his children now, but there were

a lot of maids around the house had already had family, so he couldn't impregnate them.

There were also singly succubi who didn't want to have children just yet, and his daughters

were still too young to even think about carrying children, despite of having physical bodies

older than he was.

"No, I think it's time for us to make lot of kids with each other, Naruto-sama." Mira said with

a dazed smile. "Mess my pussy and knock me up, like you knocked my mother up."

"You ask for it." Naruto smirked. He expected nothing less from her "We're going to have a

lot of children together!"

Repositioning his hands so his arms were underneath Mira's legs while still gripping her ass,

Naruto used his hold on her to drive her down his cock, punching through her cervix and into

her womb. The princess of succubi's eyes rolled up as she came instantly from his action.

Leaning forward she wrapped her arms around Naruto's neck and kissed him hard, rubbing

her tits against his chest as she quivered from the force of her orgasm.

Standing up from his seat and supporting her with his hold on her ass, Naruto started to fuck

Mira up and down his cock as she gasped and moaned into his mouth whenever his dick

punched into her womb, rocking her body with mind-blowing orgasms. As Naruto continued

to fuck her like this, he suddenly felt a small, soft hand massaging his balls. Without breaking

tongues contact with Mira, Naruto looked to the side and saw a very naked Kurama standing

behind Mira, her right hand reached down for his balls while the other was groping her own

breasts.

"You can't possibly leave me out of this, can you?" Kurama asked before disappearing from

his vision. Before he could wonder where the beautiful foxy woman was, Naruto felt her

mouth on his balls sack, lewdly sucking and slurping on his family jewels. Grinning and

kissing his white haired succubus harder, Naruto increased his speed, fucking up Mira's pussy

a lot faster while at the same time bouncing her up and down on his cock, driving her crazy

with every strike to the back of her womb.

Suddenly he stopped moving his hips. Raising Mira from his cock, Naruto let his cock drop

out of her pussy, nearly hitting Kurama in the face when it swung down. The Kyuubi wasted

no time and quickly latched onto his cock, taking ten inches down her throat in one go before

swallowing the rest with no trouble. As Naruto dominated Mira's mouth with just his tongue,

Kurama continued to pop her head madly back and forth, deepthroating her container like

how he wanted it for two minutes before releasing him and positioning his cock back to

Mira's pussy, allowing Naruto to resume fucking her best friend with new enthusiasm. She

also went back to suck his balls.

Naruto had fucked her like that for forty minutes, making her cum several times. Eventually,

when he could no longer hold back, the blond thrust his cock as far up her pussy as possible,

resting his dick inside her womb before letting loose, flooding her inside with his potent

seeds. Moaning into her lover's mouth, Mira's eyes rolled back as she experienced one of the

most powerful orgasms ever, getting extremely aroused at the thought about getting knocked

up at that moment by him.

Pulling out of Mira, Naruto settled the remaining of his load in the next best thing, Kurama's

mouth, forcing her mouthful after mouthful of sperm before pulling out when he was done

and letting her clean his cock with her tongue.

"Damn, that was great." Naruto grinned as he gently put Mira down to the ground before

turning to Kurama, who was smiling seductively "Ready for your turn?"

Line Break

"Do I really need to wear this?" Naruto asked as she looked at himself in the mirror. He was

wearing what was called a tuxedo in the demon world. The fact that it didn't have the

slightest of orange had made it his least favorite type of clothes in the world. Everything, sans

the white shirt, was black in color.

"This is a high-class party, Naruto-sama." Mira reminded him. She was sitting on the chair

next to him, her hair being combed by a maid while another one was putting light makeup on

her face. Mira was dressed in a lovely dark purple dress that hugged her attractive body

nicely and had the strap tied at the back of her neck, leaving her back completely bare. The

front part of the dress cut deep, showing a generous amount of her inner breasts, and was slit

at the right side, showing her long, creamy leg. While it was revealing, it was the sexy-

revealing kind of dress, not the slutty-revealing one Mira usually dressed herself in. It

showed her impressive feminine charms, while leaving much to the imagination. Seeing a

carefree succubus like her had to dress like that for an event, Naruto had to admit he felt a

little worried "Organize by succubi yes, but a high-class party no less. They will judge you by

how you carry yourself, how you talk, how you eat and of course, how you dress."

"Troublesome." Naruto said as he fixed his collar.

"Here, let me do it for you." Kushina smiled and stepped forward, fixing the collar of his

tuxedo for him.

"Is this really okay for you to stay at home, kaa-chan?" He asked.

"It's fine. I would love to come with you, Naruto-kun but Eve's decision isn't something I can

argue with. She is the Queen now, not me." She smiled "Plus, I have something to do to."

"What's that?"

"You will see when you return tomorrow." Kushina gave him a mysterious wink "It's for you,

after all."

"I can't wait." Naruto smirked before looking at his collar "Thanks, kaa-chan." He said before

leaning forward to kiss her. She kissed him back, and moved her down into his pants, rubbing

his cock.

"Now now Kushina-obaa-sama, you won't want him to rip that pant apart." Kurama, who was

sitting on the bed, spoke up to Kushina, but she ignored. Kurama had also decided to stay,

because she had disappeared for too long, suddenly appearing out of nowhere would cause

chaos and a lot of question. She was one of the most powerful demons out there, so she was

highly respected by many.

After a moment, his mother pulled back and smiled at him before turning to Mira, who had

finished with her preparation.

"Alright, please take good care of my son, Mira."

"Don't worry, Kushina-sama, you know I have always taken good care of him." Mira said as

she wrapped herself and pushed her breasts against his arms.

"My clones are still around here so you know what to do without me around tonight." Naruto

reminded them, and all two red heads nodded their heads "Speaking of... Where are Evelyn

and Kaguya anyway?"

"They are playing outside with their friends?" Naruto raised an eyebrow. "Some villagers,

some Kunoichi... They have become good friends with each other this afternoon and the girls

asked them to come over for a sleep over."

"Seriously?" Naruto asked, chuckling "Well, make sure to soundproof the rooms and ask the

maids to be careful with their clones and where they are having sex. I really don't want to

corrupt those young maidens right now."

"Kaguya and Evelyn are succubi that were taught mind control spell, so I can really say the

same for them." Kushina said "But I will make sure your clones are not going to walk naked

around where they are not needed."

"Right." Naruto nodded and turned to Mira "I guess it's time to go?"

"Yes." Mira nodded and raised her hand, causing a white magic circle to appear underneath

their feet "Let's go." And with that, they were teleported away.

Line Break

"Oh my, there you are." Eve, who dressed in an elegant strapless white dress with a floral

decoration, stepped forward and greeted Naruto and Mira with a smile when they appeared in

her throne room at her personal residence "Welcome back, Mira and welcome Naruto." She

smiled.

"It's good to see you again, Eve." Naruto grinned while Mira was waving her hand at her

mother "So has the party started?"

"You actually come early, but it'll be started in a few minutes." Eve answered "Some of our

guests are already here, though."

"Alright then." Naruto shrugged.

"Mother, Naruto will stay the night here after the party is over so can you prepare a room for

him?"

"Ah, is that so?" Even said while smiling happily, putting her hands together in front of her

"Of course, of course." She waved her hand, and that was all the servants in her room needed

to go to work "Is there anything else you need."

"A nice pussy would be nice." Mira playfully hit his chest with the back of her hand while

Eve just giggled "Nah, I think I will be fine."

"Talk like a true sex demon, your mother is a lucky one... unlike me, stuck with a

troublemaker." She said, putting her hands on her hips and looking at Mira, who pouted in

response "Just kidding, c'mon let me take you two to the Ball room." She said, beckoning for

them to follow her.

He had visited to the royal palace of Succubi before, but he had never come to the Ballroom,

mainly because Eve, Mira and the succubi around the house were too much of distractions to

go anywhere outside of the throne room and the bedroom. The place was almost as big as

Eve's throne room, less fancy looking, but no less impressive. It had a large dance floor in the

middle, several paintings on the wall, portraying from the most magnificent sights of world

of demons, to the most eye-catching sex activities of sex demons. Several tables stood at the

sides, holding delicious and elegant looking pastries, cupcakes, cakes, sandwiches as well as

other goodies and rich wines. Waiters and waitresses dressed in black and white, all readied

to take order from the guests of the queen.

Naruto made a quick scan around the room. The place wasn't very crowded, but some guests

were already there. Some he had never met, some he could recognize in the history books of

the demon world. Among them, there were two he could recognize immediately: Serafall

Leviathan and Grayfia Lucifuge, the leaders of Devil Faction and Yuki-onna clan. The two

beautiful women dressed nicely for the event, and were surrounded by a few other guests.

They saw him looking at their directions, and while Serafall gave him a cheerful wave,

Grayfia lowered her head down in greeting before both went back to talk with the people

around them very seriously.

"Oh oh, Naruto-sama." Mira tapped him excitedly on his shoulder before pointing at a corner

of the room, where a woman was standing between a group of men, smiling seductively

while she was talking to them "That is Ageha Kurono, one of the first Succubi my mother

gave birth to."

Ageha Kurono was an incredibly beautiful woman with the appearance in her mid-twenties.

She had milky skin, long blue hair, purple eyes and large J-cup breasts. She wore a bright red

strapless dress that barely covered her large breasts, with the skirt so short it barely went

down to her mid-thighs. Her coat was black in color and had sparkles with light tan fur on the

collar. Ageha also sported a pair of golden, made of gold heart-shaped earrings and a

matching heart necklace, thin and small, to go with it.

"So that makes her your sister, isn't she?" Mira nodded her head at his answer "Damn, she

looks as fuckable as hell!" Every succubus did, but as arch-sex demon, Ageha was much like

his mother, emitting an aura that made the thought of fucking her much more appealing.

"She's quite a beast in bed too." Mira giggled "You want to fuck Ageha? I can arrange a night

with her for you."

"Man, can I ever ask for a better girlfriend?" Mira pushed her chest out, smiling with pride

"Yes, please. I'm going to love having those tits wrapped around my dick." Naruto said,

making Mira giggle slyly.

"Will do." With that, Mira started leading him around the ballroom, introducing him to the

guests as well as their companions. He also stopped to properly greet Serafall and Grayfia,

asking the later about Haku's training. He was glad to hear that she was almost done with her

training and would return to him in a few days.

"Would you like a glass of wine, Hime-sama, Naruto-sama?" A waitress spoke up

respectfully and appeared next to them, carrying a tray full of glasses of wine with her.

"Of course, thank you dear." Naruto nodded his head with a small smile and reached his hand

out to pick one, but Mira immediately stopped him by picking up two glasses.

"Here, have this." Mira gave him a glass as the waitress walked away "The others are filled

with Aphrodisiac. You have to know which one doesn't have in order to stay saint during the

kind of party organized by succubi."

"For real?" Naruto asked as he accepted the glass "But why do you need Aphrodisiac for? Is

this party going to turn into a huge orgy?"

"Not like that, but you will see." Mira giggled.

"Also, how do you tell the differences?"

"Well, it is our natural ability, but in order to awake it, you have to use a lot of aphrodisiacs."

Mira gave him a mysterious wink before bringing the glass at her lips. It took him a second to

realize it, but he grinned at her nonetheless. He had never found much use in sex drugs,

mainly because he was naturally sensitive and horny nearly all the times.

As the place was crowded with groups of demons, the band that was standing at the side

started playing a slow tune of music. With a glass of normal wine in her hand, Eve appeared

from behind the curtains, being accompanied by two incredibly beautiful and attractive

women Naruto had never seen before, and spoke up after all eyes had turned to her.

"Everyone, for all who are able to attend to succubi's quarterly party, I thank you very much."

She spoke up "As always, it's my honor to have you all here with me tonight." She paused for

a second before continuing with a seductive smile "As usual, free sexual services from our

finest succubi are fully available in the rooms around the ballroom. There are new staff

members, as well as new toys that I have prepared to everyone's accordance." Naruto looked

around and saw many men, and some women smiling. He had the feeling that the only reason

they were there was because of the sexual services Eve was talking about "There are also

three arch succubi waiting for you in the room with red doors, but remember the risks, I take

no responsible for the sweet death of those who cannot control themselves." Many women

snickered mockingly. From the look of it, Naruto could tell it had happened before "That's it,

please enjoy the party and..."

"Hold on a second," A male demon spoke up. Naruto couldn't recognize what he was,

because he had a full human form "You didn't mention your daughter, Eve-dono. Where is

she?" There was a whole ground of demons standing behind him. Friends, bodyguards...

Naruto had no idea, but he was sure that they were all here for the same reason.

"Really?"

"Don't look at me like that." Mira giggled and nudged him playfully "I was an uncontrollable

girl before I met you, remember?" Naruto shrugged his shoulders. It wasn't something

unexpected, but he just couldn't help it "Hey! I'm right here." Mira spoke up and raised her

hand above her head, drawing everyone attention to her.

"Ah yes, I almost forgot to mention that my daughter will take no part in those services

because of a special reason." Eve smiled sweetly "but you still can find refreshment..."

"Don't joke around. We are all here for her." The devil said and walked toward Mira "I waited

a whole week for this. I'm not going to leave this place empty hand." He said and reached his

hand out toward Mira, while Naruto, who was standing next to her, quickly finished his glass

of wine "Let's go princess, let's..."

But before he could grab him, Naruto shot his hand out and grabbed his wrist, stopping him

dead on his track.

"Do we have a problem here?" Naruto asked calmly.

"Who the hell are you?" The demon asked in disbelief, trying to take his hand back but

unable to do so because of Naruto's tight grip.

"I'm her boyfriend." He said simply, causing a few guests to gasp in surprise "Go fuck

someone else, she's mine now." His other hand shot out and took hold of one of Mira's melon

breast, casually fondling it.

"Fuck you! Who do you think you..." the demon growled angrily and threw his punch, but

Naruto was faster and had already moved his head out of the way before his fist could even

come close to his face. In a lightning quick movement, Naruto summoned a tri-prongs kunai

from his pocket dimension and placed it at the demon's throat, grazing his skin just a little to

draw out some blood.

"I will ask you this..." Naruto said calmly, causing the man gulped nervously "You come here

to die sweetly, or you come here to die painfully?" with his grip still on the man's wrist,

Naruto spun him around before pushing him hard toward his group of friend, knocking them

all down to the ground when they tried to cause him. Such feat also made many, including the

group, to gasp in shock "You want to have Mira, you all are going to have to go through me."

He pointed at himself with his kunai before looking around "Same goes to all of you here for

a piece of her." He put the kunai away and asked loudly "Do I make myself clear?"

He didn't wait for them to answer his question to return to stand next to Mira, who was

looking at the group of demons while trying her best to hold her laughter in. She had never

seen them looking so pathetic.

"Ara, it seems Naruto-kun has made his own statement." Eve said in satisfaction as she

placed a hand on her cheek "Everyone. Naruto Uzumaki is our special guest tonight. Not only

is he someone who manages to have a firm grip on my daughter, but he is also the son of

Kushina, the former Queen of Ygvar and the father of my youngest daughters, Evelyn and

Kaguya, who I am going to introduce to you all in the next few weeks." The guests (who he

hadn't introduced himself to) gasped in shock, but before any of them could say anything, she

continued "I'd stay out of his way if I were you, because there's a high possibility you are

looking at the future kind of sex demons. Also, make no mistake, because while he's a horny

incubus, he's a well trained warrior. In term of skills and fighting abilities, he might have

already surpassed his mother." While the others looked at him in amazement, the ones who

had gotten threaten by Naruto looked at him fearfully "Now, enough of the negativities, this

party is a place where we all put our differences to the side and have the fun of our life.

Please enjoy the wines, the foods, the music and the services of my sex demons to your

heart's content." With that, a group of dancers who dressed skimpily walked out from behind

Eve and gathered on the dance floor, where they started dancing one of the sexiest dances

Naruto had ever seen in his life.

The party was started, and while many, mainly women, stayed behind to converse with each

other professionally, many headed out of the ballroom and quickly made their ways to the

room around the place.

"You know, Naruto-sama," Mira turned to him "my last boyfriend allowed his friends to fuck

me however they wanted, and I was kind of enjoyed that..." Naruto raised an eyebrow but

then Mira continued "But I believe I enjoy this more. Having a possessive boyfriend isn't so

bad." She smiled warmly as she placed her hands on his chest "You were so hot when you

were all serious, you know?"

"Glad to know that." Naruto smiled and leaned forward to kiss her for a full minute before

pulling back "You know, when I think about it, I have never made it official between us." He

said with a smile "Would you like to go out with me, Mira?"

"I would love to, Naruto-sama." She smiled and kissed him, sneaking her hand into his pant

to grab hold of his dick.

"Ara, aren't you two all lovey dovey with each other now?" They all looked to the side and

saw Eve walking toward them with the two women. From up close, Naruto could tell that

they were siblings, because they looked a lot like each other "Enjoying the party so far?"

"Yeah, it isn't what I have expected, but nonetheless enjoyable."

"I'm glad." Eve smiled "Anyway, it's very nice of you to stand up to Mira like that, Naruto.

Succubus or not, I would love to see her settling down with someone like you, strong,

confident and charming..."

"Please, you only want me to settle down with Naruto-sama because you want to have your

fair share of him." Mira pointed out with half-lifted eyes, making Naruto and the two servants

to chuckle.

"Now now, dear, you think so little of your mother." Eve giggled "Anyway, I'm here to

borrow Mira from you. There's something we need to take care of." She looked at her

daughter and gave her a meaningful look, making Mira smile brightly and nod her head "You

will have her back when you return home tomorrow morning."

"Aw, I'm hoping to spend some more time with my new girlfriend, you know?"

"It can't be help, since it's very important." Eve pointed out before turning to look at the girls

behind her "But don't worry, I'm not going to leave you alone here. These two are Souko and

Sayoko Souma. They will keep you company you tonight." They both bowed their heads at

him respectfully when they were introduced, giving him views to their beautiful E-cup

breasts. Souko was the one with wavy shoulder-length brown hair, while Sayoko had straight,

dirty-blonde hair that matched her sister's in length. They were both wearing dresses that

weren't doing much to keep their voluptuous bodies from being the sights that could make

men cream their pants.

"It's a pleasure to meet you, master Naruto."

"You can return to the room I have prepared for you at ten o'clock. Souko and Sayoko will

show you the way." Eve nodded her head before gesturing her head to the dancers on the

dance floor "Those girls will be waiting for you in your room after they have finished their

jobs around here."

"Damn, you are serious about this, aren't you?" Naruto asked in surprise but also amusement.

Both Mira and Eve smiled in response "Thanks a lot." He grinned and kissed her

passionately, snaking his tongue into her mouth and trying to wrap it around hers. They

stayed like that for a few seconds before Eve broke the kiss with a smile.

"You're very welcome." Eve smiled before turning to Mira "Now if you excuse me, me and

Mira have something to do."

"I will see you later, Naruto-sama." Mira waved her hand before following her mother out of

the ballroom "Are you sure that those dancers and the Souma can keep him here?"

"Don't worry. They are not just going to have sex with him. They're professional entertainers,

remember?" Mira nodded her head "The Souma Family alone can buy us enough time to

prepare everything for him. The dancers are simply insurances." And with that, the two

mother and daughter succubi disappeared.

"Hm..." Naruto looked at the clock and realized he still had three hours to spend before he

had to go to the room that Eve had prepared for him to spend the night "What should I do

now?" Naruto wondered with a thoughtful expression.

"How about a dance with us, master Uzumaki?" Sayoko asked seductive as she approached

him from the right, her arms wrapped around his right one. Souko did the same, but from the

left. Both sisters pressed their tits into his arms, looking at him while smiling seductively.

"You know what?" Naruto grinned "Why not?" with that, he let the girls lead him to the

dance floor, where many couples were dancing.

After the dance, which in better words was the cock grinding and ass swaying, was over, as

soon as Naruto left the dance floor, those who he hadn't been introduced to came to greet

him. His mother was kind of a big deal even for a succubus, and there was a chance that he

was going to become the kind of the biggest porno industry in the whole world, so he wasn't

surprised by their heartwarming greetings. He met Discordia Origa and Celestine, the

respective Queens of Dark Elves and High Elves. The two elves were extremely beautiful,

and dressed revealingly, their private parts nearly exposed. They had pleasant conversation,

mainly about political interests. While he wasn't a professional, he was able to keep up with

the two with just his mother's teachings alone.

That night, he had talked to a lot of men, but had only paid notice to the women. He talked to

Evangeline A.K. McDowell, a powerful Shinso vampire who was also an extremely powerful

dark mage and her friend Akasha Bloodriver, the dark lord of Vampire Faction. Annerose

Vajra, a feared and powerful, not to mention drop dead gorgeous high ranking witch living in

the city of Amidahara came to offer him a drink with her personal maid, Mitico Fleuretty,

before it was ruined by her sworn rival, Mayfend, who dressed in a sexy qipao. He also

danced with Rias Gremory of the Devil Faction, and her best friend Akeno Himejima of the

Fallen Angel Faction.

"It's almost ten, I think we should..."

"Excuse me, Naruto Uzumaki-sama." Naruto heard a voice and turned around to see two

women standing behind him. The first one was an incredibly beautiful and voluptuous

woman with large amounts of scarlet hair thickly braided and located in the front and back of

her body as pairs, all of which had bows near its ends. The frontal braids also had two

ornaments near the upper sections. The woman also had two U-shaped earrings on her ears,

while donning a light-colored lipstick. The second woman, who looked to be her relative,

possible her daughter, had less, but still long red hair and brown eyes. While the taller one

had a bigger pair of tits and ass, they both had voluptuous figures that he could only describe

as amazing, and dressed in beautiful dresses that honored their feminine charms "Can we

have a few seconds with you?"

"Oh, of course." He smiled "You are..."

"My name is Irene Belserion and this is my daughter, Erza." She introduced herself and Erza

lowered her head to him "I'm the Queen of Dragnof, the eastern kingdom of dragons." Naruto

widened his eyes in surprise before asking.

"Dragons? So you two are..."

"Yes, we're dragons." Irene nodded her head with a small smile "We are from a special race

of female dragon that has the ability to turn into human, what you are seeing right here are

our human forms."

"I see." Naruto grinned as he looked at them from head to toe, paying special attentions to

their breasts since their dresses were showing lot of them "You two are very beautiful, I have

to admit."

"Thank you, Uzumaki-sama." Irene smiled "Anyway, we're here hoping to see Eve-sama, but

it seems she has left earlier with her daughter." She paused for a second before continuing

"Meanwhile, you seem to have... close connections to both of them, so we are here hoping

that you can give them our words when you meet them again."

"Sure." Naruto nodded his head before leaning toward Souko when she tapped him lightly on

his shoulder.

"You might already or might not know this, but we dragons from Dragnof are currently at

war against the dragons of the west." Erza spoke up.

"The dragons of the west are the dragons you know. They cannot turn into human and

they're... how should I say this, the animals of our race." Irene continued seriously "These

dragons are currently terrorizing the western land and attacking those who live there, eating

them and destroying everything on their paths. We hope to defeat them before it's too late, but

we lack the resources to do so."

Erza nodded her head "The vampires, the witches and the devils have all agreed to join us,

even sending out their forces to aid us in battles. We're hoping that Eve-sama can do the same

and provide us what we need to win this war."

"We're not asking you to send your armies, since sex demons have never been..."

"Don't worry, I understand." Naruto smiled as he crossed his arms on his chest "Alright, I will

make sure your requests is heard. I will also help as much as I can, if that is what you need."

"Thank you, Naruto-sama." Erza lowered her head and her mother then did the same "It

means a lot to us."

"Now if you excuse us, we have some other leaders to talk to." Irene said as she offered him

her hand "I hope we will meet again, Uzumaki-sama."

"Naruto is fine." Naruto grinned as he shook hand with her "I will see you two later then."

And with that, the two dragon ladies left.

"It's ten." Naruto turned around and said to the two Souma sisters when he noticed the

dancers were no longer around "Let's go girls."

Line Break

Grinning lecherously, Naruto stepped into the room Eve had prepared for him. Souma Souko

and Sayoko accompanied him at his sides, their hands stroking his huge cock and massaging

his balls, as his pants had been dropped on the way, leaving him naked from the waist down.

The room was spacious, like his room, and was rather dark, with the only sources of light in

the room which provided just enough light to see being an orb of energy floating around the

ceiling.

The first things he noticed when he entered the room were the dancers, who stood up from

wherever they were seating and greeted him simultaneously with seductive smiles on their

faces. Then, one of them turned on the music and they all started dancing, without a doubt a

magic dance because his cock became painfully hard and stood to full attention.

While the succubi dancers were eye-catching, he quickly looked away from them when he

heard a loud, shameless moan coming from the other side of the room, where the bed was.

Looking at that direction, Naruto saw a voluptuous but completely naked woman with short,

dark purple hair masturbating on the bed with a massive vibrating dildo, almost as big as his

cock. Her tongue was hanging outside of her mouth and her lips were stretching out in a

stupid smile as she rammed the dildo into her pussy without a pause.

"Who is she?" Naruto asked the Souma sisters, and with a smile, both of them answered.

"That would be our slutty mother, Mitsuko Souma." Naruto wolf whistled as he let the girls

removed the rest of his clothes "She has been waiting for you here since the start of the

party."

"Alright then." Naruto smirked "Get naked, I will start with her first." He ordered while

walking toward Mitsuko, who yanked the dildo out of her cunt before spreading her legs

invitingly "The rest of you, continue to dance." With that, he jumped onto the MILF,

smashing his hands on her tits and without a pause spearing his cock into her smooth pussy,

thrusting into her womb and causing her to cum like crazy around him "Damn slut, you're

fucking tight." The incubus prince said as he started hammering his cock into her, aiming to

reshape her pussy and mark her as his forever.

Wrapping her limbs around his muscular body, Mitsuko brought her mouth toward his and

tongue kissed him heatly. With the strength far surpassed any other incubus, Naruto pounded

her like that for a full hour before unloading three hours of bending up lust inside her,

pumping so much cum inside her she looked pregnant by the time he was done.

"Great mother Eve, I have never seen so much cum from an incubus in my life." Souko

commented in amazement as she licked her lips sexually. After he had removed herself from

his cock, she walked on her knees closer to him and said with a small smile "Allow me, my

master." Getting her permission in the form of a nod, Souko shot her head forward and took

his cock into her mouth, sucking it into her mouth while gulping down the mixture of his

sperm and her mother's juice on his cock.

"How do you feel, Kaa-sama?" Sayoko asked excitedly as she looked at her mother while

fingering her overflowed pussy.

"Like I've been knocked up with twin and those kids grew up inside me for a split second."

Mitsuko Souma finally said after a second and pushed herself up "So, this is the prince

everyone is talking about eh?"

"Human by nature, but he fuck and cum likes a dragon." The blonde nodded "No wonder

why the queen needs all three of us and this many women to entertain him." she said, looking

around the room, where the dancers were dancing erotically to the music. Most of their

clothes had been discarded, and they were grinding against each other while making out.

"I also heard he could duplicate himself and create an army of his clothes." Mitsuko grinned

as she grabbed her daughter by the back of her head and smashed her face into her pussy

"Now, help mother clean up before he started summoning clones." She didn't even need to

finish that demand to make her daughter eat her out, as Sayoko had already started drinking

the hot, gooey sperm directly from her inside.

"Oh my..." Souko said in surprise as she was turned around and half of her body was lifted

into the air, leaving only her heavy tits and her hands on the beds "Are you really going to

take me like this?"

"I am." Naruto grinned, holding her by her thighs "Your mother is really tight, so I hope you

will live up to the expectation." With that, she braced herself for the penetration, which came

only a second later when Naruto slammed his hips forward and thrusting his cock into her

fold "What a family of perverts!" He said when he saw Sayoko and Mitsuko appearing at his

sides, hugging his legs "Tomorrow, I want you three to gather your belongings and move to

my house at the human world, I would love to keep you three around to screw senseless."

"Ara, how can we refuse such an order?" Mitsuko said, liking his thighs as he moved his hips

back and forth, fucking her daughter with strong and powerful thrusts. "Can we bring another

girl with us?"

"Kurumi, my youngest sister, she's a serious one so she's not here." Sayoko said as she

reached her hands for his balls "but when you get to know her like this, she will turn into a

cock-slut that loves to get banged."

"Good, bring her with you then." He said, moaning loudly as Souko's pussy gripped his cock

tightly "I will welcome her and you three myself." Easily holding Souko's body the way he

wanted it with just one hand, Naruto moved the other on her perfect shaped ass and started

spanking her as he continued to pound her tight pussy, causing her to enter a state of non-stop

orgasm similar to the one her mother had. Naruto grinned widely as he continued to pound

her as good and as fast as he could without bothering to stop a second to rest. Minutes later,

he came inside her, filling her pussy with an equal if not even greater amount of sperm than

his first orgasm of the night inside her mother.

Without pausing, Naruto dropped Souko and turned to Sayoko, picking her up and pushing

her against the wall, where he gripped her ass tightly and thrust his cock into her backdoor,

getting his first anal of the night out of her the blonde woman. He went like that for forty five

minutes before shooting another massive dose of sperm into Sayoko's bowel.

Creating a clone and leaving him to the Souma, Naruto got off the bed and approached the

closest dancer, who was completely naked and looking at him invitingly. Hooking his arms

under her knees, he lifted her up and then dropped her, impaling his massive man meat into

her pussy. Holding her like that, Naruto started bouncing her on his cock while flexibly

moving his hips back and forth, up and down. It didn't take him long to shoot his fourth load

of the night into her and headed to the next girl when he was done, not forgetting to leave a

trio of clones to take his place.

That night, Naruto went through them all by himself, fucking them and then filling them up

to the busting point with his cum, becoming the first man in the history that had ever fucked

the entire group of succubi dancers. He only went back to the Souma family, who was

waiting eagerly for him to return after he had made sure that he had gone through them all

and left each of them with three clones of his.

"Lick it." he ordered, holding his cock in front of their faces. Obediently, the trio of mother

and daughters brought out their tongues to lick his cock, coating it in their saliva "Now suck."

He spoke up again and watched as his cock being exchanged between the mouths of mother

and daughters. He came minutes later, spraying his cum onto their faces and their breasts

"Get on all four and present your ass to me."

Without the need to be told twice, the Souma mother and daughters turned around, got on all

four in front of him and raised their asses as high as possible. Getting on his feet in a

crouching manner, Naruto grabbed Mitsuko's ass and thrust his cock into her pussy, moaning

loudly as his cock once again returned to the tight grip of the eldest Souma. Moving his hips

in a blur, Naruto's hands reached out and made their ways into the pussies of Mitsuko's

daughters.

As Naruto continued to have his way with the Souma family, three clones of his head out of

the room and went to the second floor to enter three certain rooms, where they found many

unconscious (and also lifeless) bodies on the floors. Smirking triumphantly at the arch-

succubi who smiled seductively and gestured for them to come fuck them, the clones let the

maids around the place cleaned up the messes on the floor before closing the door behind

them.

"My my, what a sight to look at!" Commented a woman with light purple colored hair and

red eyes that had the basic features similar to a female sex demon, which including the dark

brown horns that curved downward at either side of her head, a succubus tail that extended

behind her back and a set of black like wings on her shoulder-blades. She dressed in a scanty

version of a one piece swimsuit, similar to Mira's but was dark in color and left most of her

tight but voluptuous body bare. She finished her outfit with dark stockings and arm-length

gloves.

She licked her lips as she watched Naruto and his clones fucking the Souma family, one of

the most popular succubi families in Ygvar, and the most popular group of succubi dancers in

the demon realm without a hint of tiredness. She drooled at the sight of his muscular body,

which ripped with strength as he moved his hips hard and fast. Her hands reached for her

drenched pussy as she focused her eyes on his cock, which was so hard and full of energy

that it barely went down after going through every single woman in his room. She watched as

his pulled his cock out of Souma Mitsuko's pussy and picked her daughter up to thrust it

inside her throat, moaning blissfully in pleasure before he started fucking her face relentlessly

so that he could empty his ball down her throat, which he did not even a minute later.

She had never seen an incubus showed so much strength, so much domination like he did. He

aroused her. His very presence simply turned her on.

"We're going to meet soon, Incubus Prince Naruto." With those words, the woman flapped

her wings and flew away.

Please drop by the Archive and comment to let the creator know if you enjoyed their work!